We n10748812 Cigre Africa Study Report Master+18 Final
We n10748812 Cigre Africa Study Report Master+18 Final
We n10748812 Cigre Africa Study Report Master+18 Final
CONSEIL INTERNATIONALE DES GRANDS RESEAUX ELECTRIQUES INTERNATIONAL COUNCIL ON LARGE ELECTRIC SYSTEMS
WORKING GROUP C1.9 OF CIGRE STUDY COMMITTEE C1 On Power System Planning and Development
Convenor: Riaz Vajeth (Eskom South Africa) Supported by: Kevin Leask (South Africa), Andy Bitcon (Trans-Africa Projects, South Africa), Nhlanhla Mbuli (South Africa), Bruno Cova (CESI, Italy)
CIGRE WG C1.9
Contents
List of Tables ........................................................................................................................................... v List of Figures ......................................................................................................................................... ix Executive Summary .............................................................................................................................. xv 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. Introduction...................................................................................................................................... 1 Africa's Interconnections .............................................................................................................. 10 Solar Power .................................................................................................................................... 27 Algeria ............................................................................................................................................. 29 Angola ............................................................................................................................................. 39 Benin and Togo .............................................................................................................................. 49 Botswana ......................................................................................................................................... 59 Burkina Faso .................................................................................................................................. 67 Burundi ........................................................................................................................................... 77
10. Cameroon ....................................................................................................................................... 83 11. Cape Verde ..................................................................................................................................... 89 12. Central African Republic .............................................................................................................. 99 13. Chad .............................................................................................................................................. 103 14. Comoros ........................................................................................................................................ 107 15. Congo ............................................................................................................................................ 111 16. Cte dIvoire ................................................................................................................................. 115 17. Democratic Republic of Congo ................................................................................................... 125 18. Djibouti ......................................................................................................................................... 130 19. Egypt ............................................................................................................................................. 134 20. Equatorial Guinea........................................................................................................................ 152 21. Eritrea ........................................................................................................................................... 155 22. Ethiopia ......................................................................................................................................... 160 23. Gabon ............................................................................................................................................ 168
ii
CIGRE WG C1.9 24. Gambia .......................................................................................................................................... 172 25. Ghana ............................................................................................................................................ 183 26. Guinea ........................................................................................................................................... 198 27. Guinea-Bissau............................................................................................................................... 205 28. Kenya ............................................................................................................................................ 210 29. Lesotho .......................................................................................................................................... 219 30. Liberia ........................................................................................................................................... 225 31. Libya ............................................................................................................................................. 233 32. Madagascar .................................................................................................................................. 245 33. Malawi........................................................................................................................................... 250 34. Mali ............................................................................................................................................... 255 35. Mauritania .................................................................................................................................... 266 36. Mauritius ...................................................................................................................................... 270 37. Morocco ........................................................................................................................................ 282 38. Mozambique ................................................................................................................................. 295 39. Namibia ......................................................................................................................................... 305 40. Niger .............................................................................................................................................. 320 41. Nigeria ........................................................................................................................................... 325 42. Rwanda ......................................................................................................................................... 333 43. Sao Tome and Principe................................................................................................................ 338 44. Senegal .......................................................................................................................................... 341 45. Seychelles ...................................................................................................................................... 352 46. Sierra Leone ................................................................................................................................. 357 47. Somalia .......................................................................................................................................... 367 48. South Africa.................................................................................................................................. 372 49. Sudan............................................................................................................................................. 392 50. Swaziland ...................................................................................................................................... 407 51. Tanzania ....................................................................................................................................... 417 iii
CIGRE WG C1.9 52. Tunisia........................................................................................................................................... 424 53. Uganda .......................................................................................................................................... 432 54. Western Sahara ............................................................................................................................ 441 55. Zambia .......................................................................................................................................... 444 56. Zimbabwe ..................................................................................................................................... 452 57. Conclusion and Recommendations ............................................................................................ 460 Appendix 1 ........................................................................................................................................... 461
iv
CIGRE WG C1.9
List of Tables
Table 1.1: List of Planning Personnel in Various African Countries ....................................................... 5 Table 1.2: Contact Persons for Power Pools in Africa ............................................................................. 8 Table 1.3: Contact Persons for Southern African Power Pool Member Countries .................................. 9 Table 2.1: Ministries responsible for energy .......................................................................................... 15 Table 2.2: Power utilities in different East Africa countries .................................................................. 15 Table 2.3: Energy regulators in East African countries .......................................................................... 15 Table 2.4: Eight key projects .................................................................................................................. 20 Table 4.1: System Statistics Algeria .................................................................................................... 29 Table 4.2: Electricity Forecast Algeria ................................................................................................ 32 Table 4.3: Line Forced Unavailability Rate ............................................................................................ 35 Table 4.4: Parameters of Weather Model ............................................................................................... 35 Table 5.1: Angola Annual Peak Demand, Growth at 12% p.a. [2]......................................................... 42 Table 6.1: Configuration of CEB and SBEE Transmission Network in Benin [2] ................................ 51 Table 6.2: CEB Demand Forecast [1] ..................................................................................................... 52 Table 6.3: SBEE Electricity Demand Forecast [2] ................................................................................. 53 Table 6.4: CEB Generation Statistics for 2002 [1] ................................................................................. 53 Table 6.5: CEB Generation Statistics for 2002 [1] ................................................................................. 56 Table 7.1: Short and Long Term Generation Projects ............................................................................ 62 Table 7.2: Project alternatives considered and reasons for rejection [2] ................................................ 64 Table 7.3: Base Case financial and economic returns [2] ....................................................................... 65 Table 8.1: Capacities and Duties of Electricity Sector Stakeholders in Burkina Faso [2] ..................... 68 Table 8.2: Demand Forecast for Peak Power and Energy for Burkina Faso [3] .................................... 71 Table 8.3: Evaluation of SONABEL Power Sales and Number of Customers by Category [2] ............ 72 Table 9.1: GDP Growth Rate (2002~2020) in Burundi .......................................................................... 78 Table 9.2: Assumptions Made for Load Forecast Preparation in Burundi ............................................. 78 Table 10.1: Cameroon Historic Electricity Consumption....................................................................... 84 Table 10.2: Cameroon Installed Generation Capacity ............................................................................ 85 Table 14.1: Electricity Consumption of Comores ................................................................................ 108 Table 16.1: Generation Capacity of the Cte dIvoire Network ........................................................... 121 Table 19.1: Statistical Data for Egypt 2008 ....................................................................................... 136 Table 19.2: Load Forecast in Egypt ...................................................................................................... 140 Table 19.3: Customers by Sector .......................................................................................................... 142 Table 19.4: Generation Expansion Plan (20042012) .......................................................................... 144 Table 19.5: Supply and Demand ........................................................................................................... 144 Table 19.6: Interconnection .................................................................................................................. 145 v
CIGRE WG C1.9 Table 19.7: Investment Plan ................................................................................................................. 146 Table 19.8: Transmission Line Forced Unavailability Rate ................................................................. 148 Table 19.9: Parameters of Weather Model ........................................................................................... 149 Table 19.10: Operational Criteria for Definition of Operating Reserve in Egypt ................................ 150 Table 22.1: Electricity Statistics (historical & forecast) of Ethiopia .................................................... 162 Table 22.2: Installed Capacity and Generation Mix in Ethiopia 2004 .............................................. 163 Table 22.3: Future Power Projects ........................................................................................................ 163 Table 23.1: Energy in Gabon ................................................................................................................ 168 Table 23.2: Electricity consumption 9 ................................................................................................... 169 Table 23.3: Electricity production 9 ..................................................................................................... 169 Table 24.1: The Gambian Power Demand Forecast (MW, GWh) [11] ................................................ 175 Table 24.2: The Gambian Power Demand Forecast (MW, GWh) ....................................................... 176 Table 25.1: Ghana Power Demand Forecast......................................................................................... 187 Table 25.2: Financial Performance of VRA, 19972002 (in Billion) ................................................ 194 Table 25.3: Financial Performance of ECG, 19972002 (in Billion) ................................................. 194 Table 25.4: Distribution of Staff by Category ...................................................................................... 196 Table 26.1: Guinea Peak Demand Forecast [1] .................................................................................... 200 Table 26.2: Future and Existing Installed Capacity of the Guinea Electric Power System [1] ............ 201 Table 27.1: Electricity Demand Forecast for Guinea-Bissau [1] .......................................................... 206 Table 29.1: LEC General Information April 2004 to March 2005 ....................................................... 220 Table 30.1: Sites with Hydro-electric Generation Potential [8] ........................................................... 227 Table 30.2: Total Electricity Consumed [2] ......................................................................................... 227 Table 30.3: Liberia Electricity Demand Forecast [10] ......................................................................... 228 Table 31.1: System Statistics Libya ................................................................................................... 233 Table 31.2: Statistical Data Libya 2008 .......................................................................................... 234 Table 31.3: Demand and Generation Forecast in Libya ....................................................................... 237 Table 31.4: Transmission Line Forced Unavailability Rate ................................................................. 241 Table 31.5: Parameters of Weather Model ........................................................................................... 241 Table 31.6: Operational Criteria for Definition of Operating Reserve in Libya .................................. 242 Table 33.1: ESCOM Utility Data Malawi ......................................................................................... 251 Table 33.2: Maximum Demand Forecast in Malawi ............................................................................ 252 Table 33.3: Sales Forecast in Malawi ................................................................................................... 252 Table 33.4: Future Generation Projects in Malawi ............................................................................... 253 Table 34.1: Government Energy Organizations Mali ........................................................................ 256 Table 34.2: Electricity Demand Forecast.............................................................................................. 258 Table 34.3: Existing and Proposed Power Stations .............................................................................. 258 Table 34.4: Total Electricity Production ............................................................................................... 259 vi
CIGRE WG C1.9 Table 34.5: Installed Production Capacity ............................................................................................ 259 Table 34.6: Efficiency of the Interconnected Network ......................................................................... 262 Table 36.1: Probable Sales Forecast by Customer Segment................................................................. 272 Table 36.2: The Probable Generation Expansion Plan ......................................................................... 278 Table 37.1: Statistical Data for Morocco 2008 .................................................................................. 283 Table 37.2: Demand and Generation Forecast in Morocco .................................................................. 286 Table 37.3: Morocco Generation Projects ............................................................................................ 288 Table 37.4: Transmission Line Forced Unavailability Rate ................................................................. 291 Table 37.5: Parameters of Weather Model ........................................................................................... 292 Table 39.1: Voltage Conditions ............................................................................................................ 314 Table 39.2: The Namibian Grid Short Circuit Profile .......................................................................... 316 Table 40.1: Capacity of Interconnecting Lines Niger ........................................................................ 321 Table 40.2: Electricity Consumption Niger ....................................................................................... 322 Table 41.1: Nigeria Installed Generation Capacity............................................................................... 329 Table 42.1: High, Low and Base Scenario of the GDP ........................................................................ 334 Table 42.2: The Elements and Assumptions Affecting the Load Forecast in Rwanda ........................ 334 Table 42.3: Major Future Projects in Rwanda ...................................................................................... 336 Table 44.1: Senegal Electricity Demand Forecast [15] ........................................................................ 345 Table 44.2: Distribution of Installed Capacity of SENELEC Power System [15] ............................... 345 Table 44.3: Generation Installation and Installed Capacity (MW) of SENELEC in 2005 [15] ........... 346 Table 46.1: Generation Capacity of Kingtom Power Station (November 2006) .................................. 359 Table 46.2: Forecasted Installed Capacity for 2015 ............................................................................. 361 Table 46.3: Total Electricity Production ............................................................................................... 361 Table 46.4: Installed Production Capacity ............................................................................................ 361 Table 48.1: Sales of electricity and number of customers in South Africa .......................................... 378 Table 48.2: Voltage Limits for Planning Purposes ............................................................................... 381 Table 48.3: Standard Voltage Levels as used in South Africa ............................................................. 381 Table 48.4: Target Voltage for Planning Purposes ............................................................................... 382 Table 48.5: Transmission and Distribution equipment in service in 2010 ........................................... 385 Table 48.6: New Transmission equipment to be added during the period from 2010 and 2019 as per the Transmission Development Plan .......................................................................................................... 385 Table 48.7: Eskom Power Station Capacities in 2010 .......................................................................... 387 Table 48.8: New power stations under construction ............................................................................. 388 Table 49.1: Historical Growth Rate (GDP) .......................................................................................... 395 Table 49.2: Electricity Consumption [4] .............................................................................................. 395 Table 49.3: Peak Demand Forecast (MW) & Growth Rate (%) ........................................................... 397 Table 49.4: Electricity Consumption Forecast (GWh) ......................................................................... 397 vii
CIGRE WG C1.9 Table 49.5: Installed Generation Capacity MW ................................................................................ 399 Table 50.1: Swazilands Energy Demand Projections by Fuel Type (Million Gigajoules) [11] .......... 410 Table 51.1: Tanzania Load Forecast Model ......................................................................................... 418 Table 51.2: Tanzania Forecast Summary.............................................................................................. 419 Table 51.3: Current and Future Generation and Transmission Projects. .............................................. 421 Table 52.1: Demand and Generation Forecast in Tunisia..................................................................... 424 Table 52.2: Transmission Line Forced Unavailability Rate ................................................................. 428 Table 52.3: Parameters of Weather Model ........................................................................................... 428 Table 53.1: Basis Assumptions for the Uganda Load Forecast ............................................................ 436 Table 53.2: Uganda Forecast Summary ................................................................................................ 436 Table 53.3: Electricity Supply by Source ............................................................................................. 438 Table 55.1: Summary of Generation Projects ....................................................................................... 448 Table 56.1: Zimbabwes Planned Generation Projects ......................................................................... 455 Table 56.2: Zimbabwe Power Imports.................................................................................................. 457 Table 56.3: Zimbabwe Power imports[1] ............................................................................................. 458 Table 56.4: Internal supply of electricity within Zimbabwe[1] ............................................................ 458
viii
CIGRE WG C1.9
List of Figures
Figure 2.1: Map of Africa and the future interconnection potential ....................................................... 10 Figure 2.2: Interconnections and generators in Southern Africa [3] ...................................................... 12 Figure 2.3: Poor interconnection in Africa [1]........................................................................................ 13 Figure 2.4: Future interconnection in the Western region in Africa [1] ................................................. 14 Figure 2.5: East African Power Pool ...................................................................................................... 16 Figure 2.6: Powerlines connecting Kenya to her neighbouring states .................................................... 18 Figure 2.7: Map of central Africa [1]...................................................................................................... 19 Figure 2.8: Northern Africa Power Pool ................................................................................................. 21 Figure 3.1: Schematic Diagram of CSP process ..................................................................................... 27 Figure 3.2: PV array................................................................................................................................ 28 Figure 5.1: Map of Angola [1] ................................................................................................................ 39 Figure 5.2: Electricity Supply Industry in Angola .................................................................................. 40 Figure 5.3: Energy Mix ........................................................................................................................... 44 Figure 5.4: More than 7000 MW hydro potential along Kwanza River ................................................. 47 Figure 6.1: Geographic Map of Benin & Togo....................................................................................... 49 Figure 6.2: CEBs Generation, Transmission and SBEE Distribution Resouces [1] ............................. 52 Figure 7.1: Electricity Supply Industry Structure in Botswana .............................................................. 59 Figure 7.2: Market Sector Botswana ...................................................................................................... 60 Figure 7.3: Annual Energy Sent Out in Botswana .................................................................................. 61 Figure 7.4: Botswana Power Network .................................................................................................... 63 Figure 8.1: Geographic Map of Burkina Faso ........................................................................................ 67 Figure 8.2: Burkina Faso Transmission Network ................................................................................... 70 Figure 9.1: Peak Power Demand in Burundi .......................................................................................... 79 Figure 9.2: Energy Demand in Burundi .................................................................................................. 79 Figure 10.1: Electricity production 2000-2011 [1] ................................................................................. 84 Figure 10.2: Electricity consumption 2000-2011 [2].............................................................................. 84 Figure 11.1: Energy usage sectors (Source: GESTO 2011 and ELECTRA data) ................................. 89 Figure 11.2: Electricity production 2000-2011 ....................................................................................... 90 Figure 11.3: Electricity production 2000-2011 ....................................................................................... 91 Figure 11.4: Cape Verde map ................................................................................................................. 92 Figure 11.5: Cabeolica wind farm project .............................................................................................. 93 Figure 11.6: Solar potential in Cape Verde ............................................................................................ 94 Figure 11.7: Wind potential in Cape Verde ............................................................................................ 95 Figure 11.8: Hydropower potential in Cape Verde ................................................................................. 96
ix
CIGRE WG C1.9 Figure 12.1: Map of CAR and neighbouring countries .......................................................................... 99 Figure 13.1: Map of Chad and surrounding countries .......................................................................... 103 Figure 13.2: Chad electricity production from 2000-2011 ................................................................... 104 Figure 13.3: Chad electricityconsumption from 2000-2011 ................................................................. 104 Figure 15.1: Electricity production 2000-2011 [1] ............................................................................... 112 Figure 15.2: Electricity consumption 2000-2011 [2]............................................................................ 112 Figure 16.1: Geographical Location of Cte d'Ivoire ........................................................................... 115 Figure 16.2: Cte dIvoire Electricity Structure ................................................................................... 117 Figure 16.3: Cte dIvoire Electricity Map........................................................................................... 118 Figure 16.4: Cte dIvoires Growth in Electricity Demand and GDP ................................................ 119 Figure 16.5: Cte dIvoire Forecasted Annual Maximum Demand and Consumption ........................ 120 Figure 17.1: Load Forecast for West Network SNEL .......................................................................... 126 Figure 17.2: Load Forecast for South Network SNEL ......................................................................... 126 Figure 17.3: Inga1 - 351 MW ............................................................................................................... 127 Figure 17.4: Inga2: 1424 MW .............................................................................................................. 128 Figure 17.5: Inga3 - 3500 MW ............................................................................................................. 128 Figure 17.6: Location of Grand Inga .................................................................................................... 129 Figure 19.1: Current Electricity Market in Egypt. ................................................................................ 135 Figure 19.2: Targeted Electricity Market in Egypt. .............................................................................. 136 Figure 19.3: Daily Load Curve (Maximum Discharge) in Egypt ......................................................... 139 Figure 19.4: Daily Load Curve (Minimum Discharge) in Egypt.......................................................... 139 Figure 19.5: Peak Load Curve 2003/2004 to 2004/2005 in Egypt ....................................................... 140 Figure 19.6: Energy Demand Curve in Egypt ...................................................................................... 141 Figure 19.7: Generation Mix in Egypt .................................................................................................. 141 Figure 19.8: Energy Forecast for Egypt ................................................................................................ 142 Figure 19.9: Import and Export ............................................................................................................ 145 Figure 21.1: Electricity Consumption by Sector................................................................................... 157 Figure 22.1: National Grid of Ethiopia [1] ........................................................................................... 161 Figure 24.1: The OMVG Network [1] .................................................................................................. 173 Figure 24.2: Electricity Net Generation [10] ....................................................................................... 176 Figure 24.3: Electricity Nett Consumption [10] ................................................................................... 177 Figure 24.4: Electricity Installed Capacity [10] .................................................................................... 178 Figure 25.1: National Grid of Ghana [1] .............................................................................................. 183 Figure 25.2: Ghana Electricity Status in 2006 ...................................................................................... 186 Figure 25.3: Generation Sources........................................................................................................... 188 Figure 25.4: Electricity Nett Generation ............................................................................................... 189 Figure 25.5: Ghana Installed Capacity.................................................................................................. 190 x
CIGRE WG C1.9 Figure 25.6: Nett Electricity Consumption ........................................................................................... 191 Figure 25.7: Communities Connected by NES ..................................................................................... 193 Figure 26.1: Guinea Transmission Network [3] ................................................................................... 199 Figure 27.1: Map of Guinea Bissau [4] ................................................................................................ 206 Figure 28.1: Electricity Supply by Source in Kenya. ........................................................................... 210 Figure 28.2: Electricity Supply Industry Structure in Kenya ............................................................... 211 Figure 28.3: GDP and Sales Annual Growth in Kenya ........................................................................ 212 Figure 28.4: Sensitivity Analysis of Load Forecasting in Kenya ......................................................... 213 Figure 28.5: Daily Electricity Demand Pattern in Kenya ..................................................................... 213 Figure 28.6: Kenya Electrical Power Network ..................................................................................... 215 Figure 28.7: Kenya Electrical Power Generation ................................................................................. 216 Figure 28.8: Regional Interconnection ................................................................................................. 217 Figure 29.1: Electricity Supply Industry Structure in Lesotho ............................................................. 219 Figure 29.2: Annual Maximum Demand in Lesotho ............................................................................ 221 Figure 29.3: Annual Energy Sent Out in Lesotho................................................................................. 221 Figure 29.4: Electricity Supplied by Source in Lesotho ....................................................................... 222 Figure 30.1: Map of the Republic of Liberia ........................................................................................ 226 Figure 30.2: Total Electricity Consumed Expressed in Kilowatt-hours [2] ......................................... 228 Figure 30.3: Growth in LEC Customers and Collections [6] ............................................................... 231 Figure 31.1: System Statistics Libya ................................................................................................. 234 Figure 31.2: Recent accomplishments .................................................................................................. 243 Figure 32.1: Electricity production for 2000-2011 ............................................................................... 246 Figure 32.2: Electricity consumption for 2000-2011 ............................................................................ 247 Figure 32.3: Madagascar Renewable Capacity over a 5 year period. ................................................... 247 Figure 32.4: Renewables as % Total Capacity ..................................................................................... 248 Figure 33.1: Electricity Supply Industry Structure in Malawi .............................................................. 250 Figure 34.1: National Grid of Mali ....................................................................................................... 255 Figure 34.2: Electricity Consumption in TWh ..................................................................................... 259 Figure 34.3: Gross Generation of EDM-SA ......................................................................................... 260 Figure 34.4: Distribution of EDM-SA Production by Source and Operation Centre ........................... 260 Figure 34.5: Distribution of Gross Generation by Type of Station ...................................................... 261 Figure 35.1: Electricity production between 2000-2011 ...................................................................... 267 Figure 35.2: Electricity consumption between 2000-2011 ................................................................... 267 Figure 36.1: Electricity Supply Industry Structure in Mauritius .......................................................... 271 Figure 36.2: Electricity Sales vs. GDP in Mauritius ............................................................................. 271 Figure 36.3: Probable Forecast of Electricity Sales by Customer Segment in Mauritius..................... 273 Figure 36.4: Peak Demand Forecast MW in Mauritius ........................................................................ 273 xi
CIGRE WG C1.9 Figure 36.5: Energy Forecast GWh in Mauritius.................................................................................. 274 Figure 36.6: Generation Mix in Mauritius ............................................................................................ 275 Figure 36.7: The Generation and Transmission Network of Mauritius ................................................ 276 Figure 36.8: Energy Balance with Existing and Committed Resources ............................................... 277 Figure 36.9: Effective Capacity Balance with Existing and Committed Resources ............................. 278 Figure 36.10: 10-Year Outlook for New Generation Resources .......................................................... 279 Figure 37.1: Electricity Supply Industry Structure in Morocco ........................................................... 282 Figure 37.2: Future Electricity Market in Morocco .............................................................................. 283 Figure 37.3: Electricity Sales GWh in Morocco ................................................................................... 285 Figure 37.4: Number of Customers in Morocco ................................................................................... 286 Figure 37.5: Energy by Category in Morocco ...................................................................................... 286 Figure 37.6: Installed Capacity Mix in Morocco .................................................................................. 287 Figure 38.1: Electricity Supply Industry Structure in Mozambique .................................................... 296 Figure 38.2: Medium Growth Demand Scenario in Mozambique ....................................................... 298 Figure 38.3: Demand and Energy Supplied in Mozambique ................................................................ 299 Figure 38.4: National Grid Status in Mozambique ............................................................................... 299 Figure 38.5: Development of National Grid in Mozambique ............................................................... 300 Figure 38.6: 100-MW gas-fuelled power generation plant ................................................................... 302 Figure 39.1: Geographic Location of the REDs ................................................................................... 306 Figure 39.2: Overview of the Namibian Grid with the Caprivi Link Interconnector ........................... 308 Figure 39.3: Predicted Load Growth [5] ............................................................................................... 311 Figure 39.4: Forecast Demand Increase in MW for Next 25 Years [6] ................................................ 312 Figure 41.1: Nigeria Electricity Network ............................................................................................. 327 Figure 41.2: Nigeria Forecasted Consumption and Annual Maximum Demand ................................. 328 Figure 42.1: Peak Power Forecast in Rwanda. ..................................................................................... 335 Figure 42.2: Energy Demand Forecast in Rwanda. .............................................................................. 335 Figure 43.1: Electricity production for 2000-2011 ............................................................................... 338 Figure 43.2: Electricity consumption for 2000-2011 ............................................................................ 338 Figure 44.1: Transmission and Distribution Network of Senegal [15] ................................................. 341 Figure 44.2: Senegal Existing and Planned Transmission Network [1] ............................................... 344 Figure 44.3: Existing and Planned Thermal Generation [1] ................................................................. 346 Figure 45.1: Peak Demand (MW) 20002 - 2008 .................................................................................. 354 Figure 45.2: Consumption per Category of Customers 2008 ............................................................... 355 Figure 46.1: Geographic Map of Sierra Leone [1] ............................................................................... 357 Figure 46.2: Interconnected Countries .................................................................................................. 363 Figure 47.1: A map of Somalia ............................................................................................................. 367 Figure 47.2: Electricity production for 2000-2011 ............................................................................... 370 xii
CIGRE WG C1.9 Figure 47.3: Electricity consumption for 2000-2011 ............................................................................ 370 Figure 48.1: Electricity Supply Industry Structure in South Africa ..................................................... 373 Figure 48.2: Existing Electricity Supply Structure in South Africa ..................................................... 374 Figure 48.3: The Eskom Holdings Limited structure in 2010 .............................................................. 376 Figure 48.4: Historical and Project Demand Forecast for South Africa from 1951 to 2051 ................ 377 Figure 48.5: Typical Weekly Load Profile in South Africa. ................................................................. 379 Figure 48.6: System Frequency Limits for South Africa ...................................................................... 382 Figure 48.7: South Africa Electricity Planning Process Flow Chart .................................................... 384 Figure 48.8: Map of the major Transmission Network of South Africa as in 2009 ............................. 384 Figure 48.9: Map of the Transmission Development Plan for the period 2010 to 2019 showing the major transmission projects .................................................................................................................. 386 Figure 48.10: Map of the existing Eskom power stations in 2009 ....................................................... 387 Figure 48.11: Crossrope Suspension for TX lines ................................................................................ 390 Figure 48.12: Guyed-V Suspension for TX lines ................................................................................. 391 Figure 49.1: National Grid of Sudan [3, 6] ........................................................................................... 394 Figure 49.2: Peak Demand Forecast for Sudan to 2030 ....................................................................... 397 Figure 49.3: Sudan Electricity Generation by Source [2]. .................................................................... 398 Figure 49.4: Generation Forecast and Generation Mix Based on Forecast to 2030 ............................. 401 Figure 49.5: Planned Sudan Transmission Network for year 2030 ...................................................... 404 Figure 50.1: Electricity Supply Industry Structure in Swaziland ......................................................... 408 Figure 50.2: Proposed SEB Transmission System [2] .......................................................................... 409 Figure 50.3: Electricity Net Generation [9] .......................................................................................... 411 Figure 50.4: Electricity Net Consumption [9] ...................................................................................... 411 Figure 50.5: Electricity Installed Capacity [9] ...................................................................................... 412 Figure 51.1: Electricity Supply Industry Structure in Tanzania ........................................................... 418 Figure 51.2: Demand Forecast in Tanzania .......................................................................................... 419 Figure 51.3: Energy Forecast in Tanzania ............................................................................................ 420 Figure 53.1: Electricity Sector Structure in Uganda ............................................................................. 433 Figure 53.2: Bujagali Falls project........................................................................................................ 434 Figure 53.3: Bugaji falls project ........................................................................................................... 435 Figure 53.4: Demand Forecast in Uganda ............................................................................................ 437 Figure 53.5: Energy Forecast in Uganda .............................................................................................. 437 Figure 54.1: Electricity consumption between 2000 and 2011............................................................. 442 Figure 54.2: Electricity production between 2000 and 2011 ................................................................ 442 Figure 55.1: Structure of Main Power Players in Zambia .................................................................... 445 Figure 55.2: The Projected Electricity Demand Forecast in Zambia .................................................... 446 Figure 55.3: Energy Forecast in Zambia............................................................................................... 446 xiii
CIGRE WG C1.9 Figure 55.4: Electricity Supply by Source ............................................................................................ 447 Figure 55.5: Zambias Power Network ................................................................................................. 448 Figure 55.6: ZESCO Top Management Structure ................................................................................ 450 Figure 56.1: Structure of the Electricity Supply Industry of Zimbabwe .............................................. 452 Figure 56.2: Electricity Regulatory Structure of Zimbabwe ................................................................ 453 Figure 56.3: Energy Demand by Sector in Zimbabwe ......................................................................... 454 Figure 56.4: Demand and Energy Forecast for Zimbabwe ................................................................... 454 Figure 56.5: Planned Short Term Generation Projects Zimbabwe .................................................... 456 Figure 56.6: Zimbabwe Grid with Proposed Projects ........................................................................... 457
xiv
CIGRE WG C1.9
Executive Summary
This report by Working Group C1.9 is submitted to Study Committee C1 to meet the terms of reference established in December 2004. The two main objectives of the Working Group are: 1. To provide a platform for the discussion and exchange of information and experience on power system planning among newly industrialized and developing countries Africa; 2. To publish a document that summarizes planning practices and issues for each participating utility, that would be useful for benchmarking and comparison. In order to meet the first objective, several organization meetings were held and much e-mail correspondence took place, and an email contact group was created and is attached here as Appendix 1. In addition, a presentation was done at the Southern African Power Pool meeting, which was held on 14 and 15 March 2007 in Livingstone, Zambia. A presention of C1.9 work was made at the 16th Congress of UPDEA in Nairobi, from 2426 June 2008. A workshop was also held in Cape Town, South Africa in 2009. A lot of information was also gathered using email distribution lists, one-on-one phone calls and from various internet sources. Some of the information was used directly from the internet source and the website address is referenced in general, although in some cases multiple references from a single source may have been grouped. In addition three workgroup meetings were held in 2008, three in 2009, and two in 2010 and one in 2011. To meet the second objective, this report entitled Planning Issues for Newly Industrialized and Developing Countries is presented to Study Committee C1. This document is divided into chapters. Chapter 1 provides the background to the Working Group. Chapters 2 to 55 set out as much information as has been made available and has been collated from various sources, in respect of each of the 54 African countries. Each chapter in respect of an African country is sub-divided into seven sections, as follows: Section 1: Electricity Industry Structure Section 2: Section 3: Section 4: Section 5: Section 6: Section 7: Load and Energy Forecasting Planning and Design Criteria Planning Approaches and Methods Specific Technical Issues Financing Issues Human Resources xv
CIGRE WG C1.9
1. General Information
The statistics listed below are from various sources including www.africapedia.com, http://datamarket.com, and www.estandardsforum.org, some of which are conflicting. In addition, some are estimated figures where no actual figures are available. This data must therefore be read in this context and has been included for broad information purposes only. The following overall perspectives are important to note: o Only 24% of sub-Saharan Africas population has access to electricity. o In 2008, the population without access to electricity was 590 million. o Electrification will have a positive impact on agriculture, industry development and poverty reduction.
GWh Consumption Population (Million) % of Population with Access to Electricity
No
Country
Year
MW
KWh/person
1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14
Algeria Angola Benin Botswana Burkina Faso Burundi Cameroon Cape Verde Central African Republic Chad Comoros Congo Cte dIvoire Democratic Republic of Congo Djibouti Egypt Equatorial Guinea Eritrea Ethiopia Gabon Gambia
2006 2005 2008 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005 2008 2005
31000 2201 587 2602 480 161 3435 42 101 88 19 572 2900 1028
33.3 16.9 8.7 1.8 13.3 7 16.4 0.4 3.8 9.8 0.67 4 20.8 60
98 15 24 39 7 2 47 67 8 2 46 20 26 6
15 16 17 18 19 20 21
70 98 * 20 15 48 25
xvi
CIGRE WG C1.9
GWh Consumption Population (Million) % of Population with Access to Electricity
No
Country
Year
MW
KWh/person
22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40 41 42 43 44 45 46 47 48 49 50 51 52 53 54
Ghana Guinea Guinea-Bissau Kenya Lesotho Liberia Libya Madagascar Malawi Mali Mauritania Mauritius Morocco Mozambique Namibia Niger Nigeria Rwanda Sao Tome and Principe Senegal Seychelles Sierra Leone Somalia South Africa Sudan Swaziland Tanzania Togo Tunisia Uganda Western Sahara Zambia Zimbabwe
2007 2006 2005 2005 2005 2007 2005 2005 2005 2006 2005 2006 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005 2006 2006 2005 2005 2007 2005 2007 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005 2005
1540 191 8 1066.4 108 335 4900 1050 260 297 105 367 4621 383 491 58 5900 35 10 405 93 105 70 36208 760 200 654 90 2016 330 58 1755 1397
6906 833 56 4464 339 331 18180 973 1299 804 231 2068 20670 9127 2976 438 16880 198 38 2395 217 228 251 241400 3298 1200 1199 576 11170 1674 79 8655 12270
22 9.5 1.6 34 2 3.5 5.7 18 12.5 12.3 3.1 1.3 31 21.4 2.1 11.7 130.5 8.4 0.2 11.7 0.09 6.03 12 46.6 41 1.2 38.4 6 11 27 0.3 11.7 13.2
358 88 40 131 170 84.8 3189 54 104 65 75 1590 667 426 1488 37 129 24 85 205 2411 38 21 5180 80 1000 31 96 1015 62 263 740 930
47 19 12 15 11 10 97 15 7 15 28 94 85 7 34 10 46 6 50 33 99 <10 8 80 30 27 11 17 99 9
22 34
xvii
CIGRE WG C1.9
Summary of Load Forecasting Methods Employed in African Utilities The table below summarizes the load forecasting methods employed. Many countries did not respond to the request for information below, and it is envisaged that the countries can send replies to the convenor, so that it can be considered for a possible future edition of this report. The same applies to the other tables that follow this one.
Electrifica tion Target
No
Country
Historical Trend
Known Loads*
Regression Analysis
Sectoral Analysis
End-Use Method
Top-Down Approach
Bottom-up Approach
1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14
Algeria Angola Benin Botswana Burkina Faso Burundi Cameroon Cape Verde Central African Republic Chad Comoros Congo Cte dIvoire Democratic Republic of Congo Djibouti Egypt Equatorial Guinea Eritrea Ethiopia Gabon Gambia Ghana Guinea Guinea-Bissau Kenya Lesotho Liberia Libya Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y
15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28
xviii
CIGRE WG C1.9
Electrifica tion Target
No
Country
Historical Trend
Known Loads*
Regression Analysis
Sectoral Analysis
End-Use Method
Top-Down Approach
Bottom-up Approach
29 30 31 32 33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40 41 42 43 44 45 46 47 48 49 50 51 52 53 54
Madagascar Malawi Mali Mauritania Mauritius Morocco Mozambique Namibia Niger Nigeria Rwanda Sao Tome and Principe Senegal Seychelles Sierra Leone Somalia South Africa Sudan Swaziland Tanzania Togo Tunisia Uganda Western Sahara Zambia Zimbabwe Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y Y
xix
xx
CIGRE WG C1.9
Planned Reserve Margin %
LOLP No 36 37 38 39 40 41 42 43 44 45 46 47 48 49 50 51 52 53 54 Country Namibia Niger Nigeria Rwanda Sao Tome and Principe Senegal Seychelles Sierra Leone Somalia South Africa Sudan Swaziland Tanzania Togo Tunisia Uganda Western Sahara Zambia Zimbabwe 24 Loss of Units Hours/year
RE Policy
> 15%
> 15%
> 15%
> 15%
The table below summarizes the main parameters of the transmission planning criteria applied by African countries. Most of the countries use deterministic criteria.
xxi
No 1 2 3 214 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34
Country Algeria Angola Benin Botswana Burkina Faso Burundi Cameroon Cape Verde Central African Republic Chad Comoros Congo Cte dIvoire Democratic Republic of Congo Djibouti Egypt Equatorial Guinea Eritrea Ethiopia Gabon Gambia Ghana Guinea Guinea-Bissau Kenya Lesotho Liberia Libya Madagascar Malawi Mali Mauritania Mauritius Morocco
N-1
N-2
y
y
5%
5%
5%
2%
+/-5%
5%
2%
5%
0.2 Hz
xxii
CIGRE WG C1.9
Voltage Stability Reliability Evaluation Voltage* Frequency Normal
No 35 36 37 38 39 40 41 42 43 44 45 46 47 48 49 50 51 52 53 54
Country Mozambique Namibia Niger Nigeria Rwanda Sao Tome and Principe Senegal Seychelles Sierra Leone Somalia South Africa Sudan Swaziland Tanzania Togo Tunisia Uganda Western Sahara Zambia Zimbabwe
N-1
N-2
5%
1.5%Hz
5% 5%
CIGRE WG C1.9
Financing Issues
The project finance of most African power utilities depends on company generated revenues, government support, the World Bank, donors, lending agencies and the International Development Association (IDA).
Human Resources
With regard to generation and transmission planning, many African utilities employ external consultants. There is generally a shortage of skills in this sector.
xxiv
CIGRE WG C1.9
1.
1.1
Introduction
Contents of this Report
1.1.1 This report comprises of chapters to cover the introduction and the information collected in respect of each of the 54 African countries, as follows: (a) (b) Chapter 1: Introduction; provides background to the Working Group, terms of reference and list of contributors. Chapters 2 to 55: As much information as has been made available and has been collected from various sources, is set out in respect of each of the 54 African countries.
1.1.2 The chapters in respect of each country comprise of seven sections, as detailed below: (a) Section 1: Electricity Industry Structure; outlines current and future industry structures in the participating countries, including issues and problems with respect to electrification. Section 2: Load/Energy Forecasting; discusses methods for forecasting including factors, organization and coordination. Section 3: Planning and Design Criteria; outlines both generation and transmission planning criteria used by each country/utility. Section4: Planning Approaches and Methods; discusses how planning is carried out in each country/utility. Section5: Specific Technical Issues; outlines selected technical issues and how they are resolved. Section 6: Financing Issues; discusses financing issues, particularly sources of funds and related issues. Section 7: Human Resources; presents planning resources and level of outsourcing.
1.2
Background
1.2.1 CIGRE Working Group C1.9 on Planning Issues for Newly Industrialized and Developing Countries was established by CIGRE Study Committee C1 as a continuation of the work done for ASEAN countries by Working Group C1.6. 1.2.2 The main objective of the Working Group is to provide a platform for the exchange of information on planning issues among newly industrialized and developing countries, and to publish this information for industry reference.
CIGRE WG C1.9 1.2.3 To meet the Working Group objective, a workshop was held on 14 and 15 March 2007 in Livingstone, Zambia, that provided opportunities for utilities in the Southern African Power Pool region to exchange information and discuss planning issues as required by the Working Group terms of reference. To facilitate comparative assessment across utilities, each utility present was asked to update their slides. Some discussion took place, and it was decided to include the percentage of population with electricity in the measures being reported. 1.2.4 This synthesized workshop report will provide each regional utility with the opportunity of benchmarking their practices with regional best practices, and pave the way for further interutility collaborative effort amongst regional utilities in the face of common issues, particularly in system planning.
1.3
1.3.1 The terms of reference for the Working Group was established by Study Committee C1. The main objective of the Working Group is to document issues, methods and approaches to carrying out power system planning by developing countries and newly industrialized countries. Regional utilities could then refer to the report to benchmark planning methods and strategies. The subjects/aspects covered by the report include: 1. Electricity Industry Structure 1.1 Utilities and regulations. 1.2 Structure of generation, transmission, distribution and retail business. 1.3 Future plan of electricity industry reforms. 1.4 Grid codes and roles. 2. Load and Energy Forecasting 2.1 Economic growth factors and load growth: o Economic factors that influence load and energy forecasts from a macro point of view. o Summary of correlation between economic growth factors and load growth. o Relationship between economic growth & infrastructure development. o Impacts of power sector restructuring factors. 2.2 Load Forecasting Approach and Methodology: o Description of methods used.
CIGRE WG C1.9 o Application of end-use method micro forecast at the distribution level. o The process of reconciliation between macro and micro forecasts. o Coordination between distribution and transmission at interfaces. o Load forecast approach for rapidly developing cities and newly created townships. o Keeping track of changing customer load density at the distribution level. o Impacts of a distributed/dispersed generation and electricity market. 3. Planning and Design Criteria 3.1 Generation Planning: o List of criteria used and applications. o Generation margin. o Generation mix. 3.2 Transmission Planning and Design Criteria: o List of transmission planning and design criteria. o Impacts of deterministic criteria on investment. o Application of probabilistic criteria. o Approach to using probabilistic criteria. o Power quality criteria standards and their application. 4. Planning Approaches and Methods 4.1 Coordination of Planning: o Approach to coordinate planning among various players. o Roles of the various entities/players and a coordinating body. o Roles of government regulators, independent grid operators, and market forces. 4.2 Roles of Interconnections: o Planning approach to sharing of energy resources. o Coordination of interconnection planning. 4.3 Environmental Issues: o List of environmental issues. o Meeting environmental regulations in planning. 4.4 General Grid System Planning: o Planning processes and procedures. o Planning cycles. 3
CIGRE WG C1.9 o Planning reports. 5. Specific Technical Issues 5.1 Containment of Short-Circuit Levels: o Available methods and technologies. o Experiences of developed countries. 5.2 Applications of New Technologies: o FACTS and their roles. o Cost effectiveness of new technologies. o Operation and maintenance issues. 5.3 Planning Against System Collapse: o Cost of blackout/system collapse. o Tools used. o Planning of system islanding. 5.4 Network Configurations: o Network configurations used. o Planning in anticipation of embedded generation. 5.5 Embedded/Dispersed Generation: o Embedded generation experience. o Issues related to connections of embedded generation. 5.6 Voltage Stability and Reactive Compensation: o Voltage stability problems. o Reactive power forecasting. o Load models. o Reactive compensation. 5.7 Planning for weather related phenomena.
6. Financing Issues 6.1 Source of funds and requirements. 6.2 Issues on private investments in the power sector, and requirements. 6.3 Flexible investment plan. 6.4 Roles of lending agencies and their requirements.
1.4
No 2
Country Algeria
Angola
ENE
[email protected] www.ene.co.ao
4 5
SBEE BPC
BPC
SONABEL
www.sonabel.bf
7 8
9 10 11
12 13
14
15
DRC
Prof Kitoko
SNEL
[email protected] www.snel.cd
16
Djibouti
EED
Tel. 09-253-35-2851
CIGRE WG C1.9
Names of the Planners EEHC Email Address and Organization website Tel & Fax No.
No 17 18 19
EEA
Tel.09-291-1121938
20
Ethiopia
EEPCO
www.eepco.gov.et
1 22 23
www.seeg-gabon.com
www.ecgonline.info www.vra.com
24 25 26
27
Lesotho
LEC
[email protected] www.lec.co.ls
28 29 30 31
Liberia Libya Madagascar Malawi Mr. Binnie Banda GECOL JIRAMA ESCOM [email protected] www.escommw.com Tel: +265 1 824 059 www.gecol.ly
32 33 34
35
Morocco
ONE, DRSC
[email protected] www.one.org.ma
36
Mozambique
EDM
[email protected] www.edm.co.mz
Mozambique
EDM
[email protected] www.nampower.com.na
CIGRE WG C1.9
Names of the Planners Mr. Obrien Hekandjo Email Address and Organization NamPower SONICHAR, NIGELEC Dr Inugogum Tom (Senior Planning Manager presented at UPDEA Nairobi June 08) 40 41 42 Rwanda Sao Tome and Principe Senegal Moustaphn Baidy BA Also got presentation at UPDEA 43 44 45 46 Seychelles Sierra Leone Somalia South Africa Mr. Riaz Vajeth ENEE ESKOM [email protected] www.eskom.co.za South Africa 47 48 Sudan Swaziland Mr Victor Hlatshwako Mr Kevin Leask ESKOM NEC SEB [email protected] www.necsudan.com [email protected]. sb www.seb.co.sz 49 Tanzania (no contact) Tanzania (no contact) 50 51 Togo Tunisia (no contact) Mme. Souad Allagui (Sent e-mail with package docs. 1707-08). Mr. Gerald Muganga (Planning Manager) UETCL TOGO ELECTRICITE STEG [email protected] www.steg.com.tn Mr. John Kabadi TANESCO [email protected] Tel: + 255 22 24511030 Mr. Ngula TANESCO [email protected] Tel: +268 623 5510 Tel: 27 11 800 8111 Tel: 27 31 267 4673 SENELEC [email protected] www.senelec.sn ELECTRO-GAZ www.electrogaz.co.rw PHCN website Obrien.hekandjo@nampow er.com.na www.sonichar-niger.com www.nepanigeria.org Tel & Fax No. Tel: 264 61 2052365
No 37 38 39
52
Uganda
CIGRE WG C1.9
Names of the Planners Email Address and Organization website Tel & Fax No.
No 53 54
ZESCO
[email protected] www.zesco.co.zn
Tel: 260 1 363 521 Fax: 260 1 362614 Tel: 260 1 36 2414 Fax: 260 1 232933
ZESCO
55
ZESA
[email protected] www.zesa.co.zw
Tel: +263-4-774530
Contact Person Mr. Bruno K. Kalala Secretariat Permanent du PEAC 60 Secretary General Secretariat
Tel No. Tel: +242 480 217 Cell:+243 81 512 8014 (242)48 02 17 (243) 99 12 497 (243) 81 51 28 014 (243) 99 93 832
Secretary General
Tel: +263 4 250564/9 Cell: +263 11 418 637 Fax: +263 4 250566/5
Southern African Power Pool West African Power Pool West African Power Pool West African Power Pool East African Power Pool
Co-ordination Centre
Secretary General Technical Advisor WAPP Project Coordinator of the WAPP Information and Coordination Center Executive Secretary
Tel: +229 213 74195 Fax: +229 213 77143 Tel: +234 9 314 3269 Fax: +234 9 314 3267
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 1.3: Contact Persons for Southern African Power Pool Member Countries
No 1 Name Mr. Mbuso Gwafila Organization BPC Email Address [email protected] Tel & Fax No. Tel: +267 360 3502 Fax: +267 395 9404 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 Mr. Mphee Ratshee Mr. Roland Lwiindi Mr. Carlos Yum Mr. Antonio Manguambe Mr. Euclides M. de Brito Mr. Joaquim Ventura Mr. Binnie Banda Mr. Maxwell Mulimakwenda Mr Kevin Leask Mr. Kahenge Simson Haulofu Mr. Obrien Hekandjo Mr. Henry Ndzimandze Mr. John Kabadi Mr. Musara Beta BPC CEC EDM EDM ENE ENE ESCOM ESCOM ESKOM NamPower NamPower SEB TANESCO ZESA [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] Tel: +267 492 0200 Tel: +260 2 244 062 Tel: +258 1 304407 Tel: +258 82 302 5817 Tel: +244 912 429650 Tel: +244 222 327 515 Tel: +265 1 824 059 Tel: + 265 18 22 000 Tel: +27 11 800 8111 Tel: +264 61 205 2283 Tel: +264 61 2052365 Tel: +268 4042521/4 Tel: +255 22 24511030 Tel: +263 4 774530
CIGRE WG C1.9
2.
Africa's Interconnections
The interconnection is about a framework for pooling energy resources and promoting power exchanges between utilities in a given geographic area based on an integrated Master plan and preestablished rules. The objective of Africas interconnection is to provide a more optimal electricity grid across Africa. The purpose of creating such a network is to integrate the operation of the international power system into a unified sustainable electricity market. Africa is broken up into different power pool regions that will be discussed in the report.
2.1
The SAPP was created after the signing of the Intergovernmental Memorandum of Understanding (MoU) on 28 August 1995 to give all its members a reliable and cost-effective power supply with interests in natural resources and environmentally friendly alternatives. This electricity sector has involved governments, financial agencies and power utility companies across Southern Africa to form SAPP with the support of the South African Development Community (SADC). All the participating countries in the SAPP have equal rights and they have all agreed to share knowledge and information with each other.
10
CIGRE WG C1.9 The countries in Southern Africa have encountered many political and socio economic changes in the past decades, influencing their relationships towards each other. The Southern African Development Co-ordination Conference (SADCC) was held, which was later developed into the Southern African Development Community (SADC). This gave the Southern African countries the motivation to become a stronger global competitor, especially in the economics sector [1]. The SAPP incorporates the following visions, objectives and values [2]: 1.6.1 Vision: Facilitate the development of a competitive electricity market in the Southern African region. Give the end user a choice of electricity supply. Ensure that the Southern African region is the region of choice for investments by energy intensive users. Ensure sustainable energy developments through sound economic, environmental and social practices. 1.6.2 Objectives: Provide a forum for the development of a world-class, robust, safe, efficient, reliable and stable interconnected electrical system in the southern African region. Co-ordinate and enforce common regional standards of quality of supply; measurement and monitoring of systems performance. Harmonize relationships between member utilities. Facilitate the development of regional expertise through training programmes and research. Increase power accessibility in rural communities. Implement strategies in support of sustainable development priorities. 1.6.3 Values: Respect for others and develop mutual trust Honesty, complete fairness and integrity in dealing with issues Selfless discharge of duties Full accountability to the organization and its stakeholders Encourage openness and objectivity
11
CIGRE WG C1.9
2.2
Figure 2.2 shows the interconnections and generators in the Southern African countries:
12
CIGRE WG C1.9
2.3
The figure above depicts the inadequate electricity footprint in Economic Community of West African States (ECOWAS). Therefore to investigate the situation of need, a new organization was created called Western African Power Pool (WAPP). Western African Power Pool is an organization that deals with the integration of the national power systems into a unified, sustainable regional electricity market, with the ultimate goal of providing the ECOWAS member states with stable and reliable electricity supply at affordable cost [1]. The legal framework governing WAPP, include: o The Intergovernmental MoU signed by ECOWAS Energy Ministers in October 2000. o The Inter-utility MoU and MoU between the transmission system operators signed by the general managers of power utilities in March 2001. The ECOWAS Energy Protocol was signed by the Heads of State and Government in January 2003 providing a secure legal framework for investment in the energy sector. The ECOWAS Energy Information Observatory launched in 2003 serves as a focal point for investors interested in financing WAPP priority projects. WAPP objectives and goals are to improve supply of reliable, stable, sustainable affordable electricity. These objectives are broken down as follows: Facilitate infrastructure development o Transmission interconnection 13
CIGRE WG C1.9 o Exploit primary energy resources (natural gas, hydro) Capacity-building for Secretariat and Member utilities Develop harmonized codes and standards to facilitate operation, trade and development, e.g. o Operation Manual (OSMP) o Planning and design criteria Develop and improve energy trading o System monitoring and coordination o Standard arguments (trading, wheeling, power purchase) o Electricity market (rules, governance, metering, settlement) WAPP has adopted a master plan to develop electricity generation and transmission infrastructure, and to interconnect the national electrical power systems.
References
1. Eskom presentation; WAPPppt_may1.pdf
14
CIGRE WG C1.9
2.4
On 24 February 2005, seven African countries (Congo, Egypt, Ethiopia, Kenya, Rwanda, Burundi, Sudan) signed a MOU (memorandum of understanding), thereby forming the EAPP. The MOU covers issues such as members, obligations, organizational structure, resources, arbitration and enforcement. Later on Tanzania, Djibouti and Uganda joined the EAPP. The surface area including water is 1.82 million sq.km and the population is 133.5 million. The different ministries that are responsible for energy in the East African countries are shown on Table 2.2 below:
Table 2.1: Ministries responsible for energy
COUNTRIES Burundi Kenya Rwanda Tanzania Uganda MINISTRIES Ministry of Energy and mines Ministry of Energy Ministry of Infrastructure Ministry of Energy and Minerals Ministry of Energy and Minerals Devt
THE PROPOSED INTERCONNECTED LINES It consists of the Uganda (Bujagali) Kenya (Lessos) 220 kV interconnection line of 256 km, and the Uganda (Mbarara) Rwanda (Kigali) 220 kV interconnection of 172 km. It also involves the Rwanda 15
CIGRE WG C1.9 (Kigoma) Burundi (Rwegura) 110 kV interconnection line of 103 km and upgrading the voltage of existing 70 kV line Ruzizi hydropower plant (DRC) to Bujumbura in 110 kV and from Ruzizi to Goma (DRC) in 220 kV with extensions 110 kV Bujumbura Kiliba (DRC) and 220 kV Kibuye (Rwanda) Goma (DRC) Mukungwa (Rwanda) Kigali (Rwanda)
The objectives of the EAPP include the following: Secure power supply for countries of the region Facilitate in the long term the development of an electricity market Optimize the usage of natural energy resources ( oil and gas-solar-hydro-geothermal ) Increase the population access rate to power Reduce electricity cost
The key issues and difficulties were highlighted as the following: Infrastructure o decayed roads, 16
CIGRE WG C1.9 o slow telecommunication, o unsafe airports o lack of oil/gas pipelines Strain on network and high losses Relatively low electrification Missing or not updated data Various studies and projects will be conducted, to coordinate and consolidate power grids between the various countries forming part of the EAPP, including studies funded by the African Union (AU), the European Union (EU) and the Norwegian Government. Consultants include the Consortium of SNC Lavalin (Canada) and Parsons Brinckerchoff (UK) for the Regional Master Plan & Grid Code Study. Mercados Energy Market International for Technical Assistance and Capacity Building Study promoting efficient and sustainable energy markets, designing effective regulation. The East African region has no shortage of resources to generate electricity and has an environment that is attractive for financiers to help the region sustainable development. The planned cross-border interconnections will strengthen the capability of the EAPP and improve the integration of the electricity markets in East Africa. In addition it will establish a long-term strategy for increasing crossborder trading, and a business plan introducing regulations and agreements for cross-border trading in the region. Financial Issues The East Africa Power Pool has already secured Euro 2.7 million ($4 million) from the European Union. The funds are being used to strengthen the capability of the East Africa Power Pool permanent secretariat to improve the integration of the electricity markets of the region into a regional electricity market. The funds will also be used in the preparation of the Eastern Power Market Development Plan, preparation of a strategic and business plan, as well as financing the development of power market rules and agreement for cross-border trade. An extra 41 million under the African Development Bank Nepad fund will be spent on the drafting of the East Africa Power Pool regional power system master plan and regional grid code. It also involves, and the development of an information system. The power exchange market to be created among those countries is aiming for low cost of power supply, systems stability, security of supply and optimization in the use of the energy resources. Each country will implement the portion of the project on its territory, while a co-ordination unit will be established at Nelsap. The project consists of the construction and strengthening of interconnection of electricity networks of five countries: Burundi, DRC, Kenya and Uganda.
17
CIGRE WG C1.9
References
1. Energy Efficiency Workshop, Washington, March 2010 2. http://www.eac.int/energy
2.5
The CAPP (Central African Power Pool) was set up in April 2003, the main objective of this pool was to organize and manage an electric power market to satisfy all power demands in Central Africa through an interconnected electric network. The countries involved in this pool include Angola Burundi, Cameroon, CAR, Congo, Democratic Republic of Congo, Gabon, Equatorial Guinea, Rwanda, Burundi, Sao Tome and Precipe and Chad.
18
CIGRE WG C1.9
The vision of the CAPP is to use the enormous Central African hydroelectric potential, estimated at more than 650 TWh/year (52 % of all the African potential), to satisfy all the demands for electricity, in favour of households, states and industries of Central Africa through systems of interconnection of national networks, and an open market for the electric energy exchanges. The main objectives of CAPP are to enforce policy at the regional level, promote and develop power trade and ancillary services, increase access to electricity to populations with the aim of reducing poverty and to improve overall electricity system reliability and quality of supply in the entire region. Key activities undertaken so far: Administrative and physical installation of CAPP and preparation of additional legal management texts Preparation of final report of preliminary study on master plan for establishment of an electric power market in Central Africa by 2025 Identification of priority integrating projects (PIP) and projects of the Pilot Cross-border Electrification Programme (PPET); preparation of data sheets and terms of reference for studies on the said projects Production of communication documents and the Action Plan 20062010 Activities for CAPP capacity building
19
CIGRE WG C1.9 Next key activities planned: Preparation of feasibility studies on two PIP projects and four PPET projects Adoption of technical, legal, commercial and regulatory instrumentsfor the regional electric power market Organization of a Power Forum on projects to establish a regional electric power market Some CAPP projects are already underway and are in various stages of completion. There are eight key projects and these are elaborated on below.
Table 2.4: Eight key projects
20
CIGRE WG C1.9
2.6
The Arab Maghreb Union (UMA) countries are grouped within COMELEC (Comit Egypt is connected to UMA countries through the 220 kV Libya-Tunisia interconnection. Egypt is also connected to the Middle East through 500-kV/400-kV Egypt-Jordan interconnection. Finally, Egypt-Libya-Tunisia-Algeria-Morocco (ELTAM) interconnection is being linked to European electricity system through Morocco-Spain interconnection. It forms the southern part of the future Mediterranean Electricity Ring (MEDRING).
21
CIGRE WG C1.9
2.7
The following chapter shows a timeline of Cigre and other relevant meetings attended, which provided to the construction of this report. 2004 CIGRE General Session Study Committee C1 decided that the work of the working group should focus on countries/electric utilities in the African continent 2004 Review of 1985 UPDEA/CIGRE Symposium At the symposium the following topics were discussed Electricity generation and the national energy policies of developing countries Low power isolated systems and developing of interconnections Technical developments General constraints affecting the development in developing countries Symposium Electric Power System in Developing Countries Dakar, Senegal, Nov 1985 Was organized by: UPDEA (Mr Paul Apandina Chairman) CIGRE Study Committee 37 (Mr N Vigar Norway) CIRED (International Conference on Electricity Distribution) SENELEC Summary was captured in Electra edition 107 of July 1986. 304 Participants from 41 Countries participated, including 19 African Countries. Findings from the conference: More information exchange needed between developed and developing countries Low access to electricity in Africa (DRC 60 million people only 6% have electricity, Wide intention to use pre-payment systems Reliability: Rural One line, Industry (n-1), Can use backup solutions for critical loads Interconnection can improve reserve margin needs Exchange of masterplan info between countries Electricity to remote villages with 10 KVA load ->
22
CIGRE WG C1.9 11 kV/LV at house with small trfrs Young engineers from industrialized countries can learn from working in developing countries, as they will not have such opportunity otherwise Skills development from school level, involve developed countries in sharing information, involve younger and operational staff during construction phase For economic efficiency, countries should create joint centres of excellence and power training institutes Solutions from developed countries must be tailored to African conditions Financing usually complex, and need for local wealth creation in countries and hence simpler self-financing schemes 2005 Review of IEEE Power and Energy paper by Bai K. Blyden and Innocent E. Davidson In Africa, electricity demand exceeds supply. With a population of 805 million (690 million in sub-Sahara), only 10% are grid-connected (urban dwellers), and over 90% are not served (rural) or nongrid-connected. Africa uses about 3% of the worlds electricity but accounts for 13.4% of the population and 15% of land area. The largest consumer of electricity is the mining sector. South Africa, the most electrified African country, is 70% grid-connected, 30% nongrid or not served. In Nigeria, easily the largest electricity market with a population of over 126.9 million people, less than 40% of them have access to electricity. Every facet of human development is woven around a sound and stable energy supply regime. The emerging picture for Africas critical regional power bases are: hydro power in Inga, DRC, and Central Africa with an untapped 39 000-MW capacity. Geothermal resources in the Rift Valley region, East Africa with an untapped 2 0003 000 MW-potential. Paris 2006 and Osaka 2007 Meeting Feedback was received at both these Cigre sessions, after presentations made by C1.9 representatives. At Paris 2006 Riaz Vajeth provided an overview of Africas Power sector highlighting the following: Africa population 915 million (2006 E) Generation 94 898 MW (2001). Energy production 338 485 GWh (2001) 23
CIGRE WG C1.9 Africa is fairly endowed with significant energy resources for electricity generation, but they are unevenly distributed. Oil and gas reserves in North Africa and the Gulf of Guinea; oil or gas fields in other areas; e.g. Sudan, Ethiopia, Chad, Mozambique, Namibia, and Tanzania. Hydropower potential in Central and Eastern Africa with highest potential in DRC, Ethiopia and Cameroon. Coal deposits in Southern Africa, but predominantly South Africa with 90% of the 55 billion tons total reserves. Geothermal energy in East Africa region (Kenya, Ethiopia and Djibouti). Highest wind power potential in North Africa (Morocco and Egypt) and Southern Africa. Sourced from, Mr. P. Niyimbona UN Economic Commission for Africa Riaz also mentioned the benefits to be expected from developing interconnections and operating power pools which include the following: reduction capital and operating costs through improved coordination among power utilities; optimisation of generation resources with large units; improved power system reliability with reserve sharing; enhanced security of supply through mutual assistance; improved investment climate through pooling risks; coordination of generation and transmission expansion; increase in inter-country electricity exchanges; and development of a regional market for electricity. One of the comments received at Osaka meeting was to include information on energy efficiency and renewable energy initiatives. These are included in relevant country chapters that follow, but is not exhaustive. 2007 SAPP Meeting in Livingstone, Zambia South African team met with Planning Managers from all SAPP countries and presented their work Obtained contact list of the SAPP planning personal Obtained agreement from countries to participate in workgroup and to update their respective country data
24
CIGRE WG C1.9 2008 UPDEA Conference in Nairobi Riaz Vajeth made a presentation on C1.9 work at this conference. Union of Produces, Conveyors and Distributors of Electric Power in Africa This is the largest gathering of power utility executives and technical experts from Power Companies across Africa Attended by Riaz Vajeth and Andy Bitcon Presentation done to an audience of 400 delegates representing 40 countries across Africa Got indication from UPDEA Chairman for support for C1.9 work Handed out draft country papers and asked countries to update these. Became aware that UPDEA is updating the Africa Grid Map, and this task is almost complete Big focus on improving access to electricity to all people in Africa Was made aware of previous UPDEA/CIGRE collaboration, 1985 Symposium 2008 Africa Power & Electricity Congress Johannesburg Energy development in Africa Regulation and Policy Finance and Funding Options for alternative and renewable Energy Initiatives for energy efficiency The role of IPPs Oil and gas markets fuelling growth in Africa Ensuring sustainable developments Nuclear energy the fastest growing future power source Power pools and electricity distribution Innovative solutions for transmission and distribution 2009 Feedback on Parallel Session on WG C1.9 Issues at Cigre 6th Southern African Regional Conference in Cape Town 19 August 2009 30 delegates from the Main Conference attended the Parallel Session Presentations covered Planning issues in the following African Countries: o South Africa o Namibia 25
CIGRE WG C1.9 o Sudan o Cte dIvoire o Morocco, Algeria, Tunisia, Libya and Egypt Other presentations: o Geo-based load forecasting o Long term network master plans 2011 Special meeting with group of contributing engineers and editor Riaz Vajeth convened a meeting with 10 newly qualified graduate engineers and briefed them on an assignment to capture final updated information on all African countries. Each engineer was assigned 5 to 6 countries. They are Brenen-Lee Wallace Govender (co-ordinator), Ruaan Nel (Lead assistant to Riaz for technical content), Chandresh Juggernath, Zane Evan, Ndangi Muthadi, Vhuhwavho Mungai, Junaid Alli, Ameeth Nathoo, De Wet Visser and Clinton Ashley Chetty. The workgroup would like to thank this group for the noteworthy efforts in short a time frame. They were also able to get some exposure regarding CIGRE activities. Ruaan also assisted Riaz in getting the final editing done, which was completed by Monica Kirsten from the University of Stellenbosch. In 2011, Kevin Leask presented an uodate in Brazil session in April 2011.
In 2012, Riaz Vajeth presented at Cigre Paris session. The issue of solar photovoltaic power was highlighted as an area of intrest, which could provide a solution for electrification of remotes parts in Africa and rural areas. Some brief information is included here as chapter 3, which can be built upon in futures updates of this report. There was also support for marketing this document and for collection of comments by inserting links in the CIGRE, UPDEA, World Energy Council, and financial institutions websites like AFDB and World Bank. There was also support for arranging a joint UPDEA & CIGRE workshop.
26
CIGRE WG C1.9
3.
Solar Power
Solar Power is purely the conversion of sunlight into electricity. There are various techniques
in order to extract this energy and provide basic power into the households of millions of people in Africa. The conversion process can adopt of one two techniques, namely Photovoltaic (PV) or concentrated solar power (CSP). PV technology is a solar cell which is a semiconductor that is able to harness the sunlight and convert to Direct Current. The use of an inverter converts the DC to AC which most of the household applications utilizes. CSP technology is mainly used in large scale operations often feeding a grid and supplying millions of households. This type of system uses numerous mirrors or lenses that reflect light onto a centralised tower. The lenses / mirrors are parabolic in order to direct maximum amount of sunlight onto the tower. The newer types of mirrors are extremely efficient as they rotate and align themselves to the rays of the sun.
The tower consists of a tank filled with water and the reflected sunlight heats the water into steam. A steam turbine is connected to the tower and the water generated steam spins the blades of the turbine, the output of the steam turbine is connected to a generator, which is utilized to pump this energy into 27
CIGRE WG C1.9 the national grid. Alternative sources of Electricity are becoming important in Africa because of capacity shortage and environment demands growing each year. Solar power is an ideal option for renewable energy in Africa. The capital costs for solar photovoltaic is fast decreasing and becoming more affordable for production of power in remote and rural areas in Africa, and in many cases can displace diesel generators.
Source: http://www.charcoalproject.org/2010/12/nyt-energy-poverty-on-the-agenda-for-2011/ Electricity from renewable sources would be beneficial in terms of security (illumination), hot water readily available, business stores opening longer hours for trade, education levels increases as scholars become computer literate, various health related problems addressed in clinics due to equipment power by solar, etc. A case study conducted in Ghana revealed a better quality of life, high attendance in schools, improved health, improved agricultural production and increased productivity.
28
CIGRE WG C1.9
4.
4.1
4.1.1
Algeria
Electricity Industry Structure
The Algerian Network
Algerias state-owned power company, Sonelgaz, generates and distributes electricity and natural gas to the entire country. Established in 1969, Sonelgaz has a maximum demand of 6 468 megawatts and is made up of 22 subsidiaries and 20 837 employees, as of December 2006. The company is responsible for network management, maintenance, engineering, conversion, planning studies, elaboration of tender documents, supervision and training. Some electricity related statistics are shown in Table 2.1
Table 4.1: System Statistics Algeria
Installed Capacity by Type of Generation (MW) 2008 Thermal Steam Turbines Gas Turbines Combined Cycle Diesel Hydro Renewables Others Total Yearly Generation by Type (GWh) 2008 Thermal Steam Turbines Gas Turbines Combined Cycle Diesel Hydro Renewables Others Total 39 986 39 427 13 384 20 339 5 704 276 283 8 501 8 055 2 740 4 490 825 216 230
29
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 4.1 (contd.): System Statistics Algeria
Yearly Consumption (GWh) Residential Commercial Industrial Others Total Consumption per Capita (kWh) Population supplied (%) Population growth (%) Population 2008 (000) Maximum Load (MW) Growth rate (%) Time Date 2008 2007 Exports (GWh) Imports (GWh) Electricity Losses (%) Total Distribution Transmission Generation Transmission Lines (km) 400500 kV 220230 kV 132150 kV Substation Capacities (MVA) 400500 kV 220230 kV 132150 kV 5 000 14 184 n.d. 4 574 9 135 7 862 n:d n:d n:d n:d 8.00 19:00 16 Dec 08 6 925 6 411 323 274 1.16 34 800 12 212 4 726 12 871 2 775 32 584 936
The Algerian network was interconnected with the Tunisian network at 220 kV in 1975, and in 1988 with the Moroccan network. The three networks have been synchronously interconnected to the European network since the underground connection Morocco Spain was brought into operation in 1997.
30
CIGRE WG C1.9 Trading between the three Maghreb countries has been carried out on the basis of annual of specific contracts. It is also important to point out that ONE and SONELGAZ are external operators on the Spanish electricity market. They buy and sell energy on the basis of bilateral contracts and/ or directly participate with the joint Spanish-Portuguese market operator, MIBEL. 4.1.2 Electricity Market The Algerian government decided to progressively open the electricity market in 2002 and the Electricity Law was approved on 5 February 2002. The main provisions of the Law, which governs the sector of electricity, are: The opening of the electricity sector to private investments and in particular the competitive activities of electricity (production and supply) and natural gas, so as to achieve: o a reduction of costs. o an improvement in the quality of service to customers. o a creation of competition in the electricity sector. Investments: any investor who so wishes, can produce electricity with a simple authorization. For distribution, a system of concessions is in place. Public Service: the state remains in charge of ensuring the quality of public service. Network access: access to transmission and distribution networks, regulated natural monopolies, is guaranteed for all. In order to ensure that there is no discrimination between operators, the following bodies have been created: An Independent System Operator. A Market Operator. A Regulatory Commission for Electricity and Gas. The latter, which must be independent and autonomous, has the following mission: To control the public service. To advise public authorities on the organization of the market. To control and monitor compliance with the regulations by the operators. 4.1.3 Electricity Market Opening
Progressive market opening is an objective to be reached consistently with the provisions contained in the Law of 5 February 2002. The following reforms have been undertaken or are in progress: The restructuring of SONELGAZ into a holding company with subsidiaries responsible for specific activities (legal separation) since 1 January 2004. 31
CIGRE WG C1.9 The creation of an Independent System Operator, where SONELGAZ will hold only 10% of the capital. The creation of a subsidiary of SONELGAZ owning the transmission grid (GRTE). The creation of a subsidiary of SONELGAZ owning the power plants (SPE). The setting up of a regulatory authority (CREG) whose members are nominated by the President of the Republic. The preparation for setting up a Power Exchange managed by the Market Operator. As of now, new independent operators have already entered into the production market, since independent power producers (IPPs) were allowed into the country. For distribution, the introduction of competition is also foreseen, with a system of concessions on the basis of specifications and tenders. The law foresees that eligible customers can freely negotiate supply contracts with producers, sales representatives and/ or distributors. Fees for the use of the transmission and distribution networks are regulated and fixed by the Regulatory Commission according to a specific procedure. Captive customers will pay a flat tariff throughout the whole country (prquation tarifaire). The market will be made up of: bilateral contracts between operators. a power exchange where producers, sales representatives and consumers will bid day by day (day-ahead market).
4.2
32
CIGRE WG C1.9
4.3
The main technical criterion for transmission system development is the N-1 security criterion. It is mostly related to the loss of single circuit, transformer or generator, when after the occurrence of a fault event the following consequences are to be avoided: thermal overloading of branches, voltage deviations above a permitted range, loss of stability, loss of load, interruption of power transits, and disturbance spreading over the power system.
4.4
N-security conditions The basic assumptions related to the N criterion of the transmission network are: The rating limits of transmission lines should be intended as maximum permanent currents. In normal operating conditions, no overload of the transmission network is allowed. No generator will be above its continuous reactive capability with possible restrictions decided by the planner to account for operational constraints. The loads are represented as constant active and reactive powers. In normal operating conditions a long-term overload of transformers up to 10% of nominal rating is allowed. A short term overload (less than 15 minutes) is allowed up to 20%. Maximum and Minimum Operating Voltages. For the transmission system generally, unless otherwise specified, the maximum operating voltages are as follows: o For 400 kV network maximum voltage is 428 kV. o For 220 kV network maximum voltage is 235.4 kV. o For 150 kV network maximum voltage is 159 kV. o For 90 kV network maximum voltage is 95.4 kV. o For 60 kV network maximum voltage is 63.6 kV. The minimum operating voltages values are as follows: For 400 kV network minimum voltage is 372 kV. 33
CIGRE WG C1.9 For 220 kV network minimum voltage is 204.6 kV. For 150 kV network minimum voltage is 141 kV. For 90 kV network minimum voltage is 84.6 kV. For 60 kV network minimum voltage is 56.4 kV. Operating Frequency The nominal frequency of North African countries is 50 Hz and its permissible variation range under automatic generation control (AGC) is 50 0.05 Hz. Under normal operating condition the maximum permissible variation range is 50 0.2 Hz. N-1 Conditions The following criteria are applied under N-1 contingency conditions: The transmission system should be planned such that reasonable and foreseeable contingencies do not result in the loss or unintentional separation of a major portion of the network or the separation from the regional interconnected system. During contingency conditions, a temporary overload of the transmission lines is allowed up to 10%. A temporary overload of transformers is allowed in emergency conditions up to 20% continuously during peak hours. The maximum post-transient voltage deviation is 10%. For transmission system generally, unless otherwise specified, the maximum operating voltage values are as follows: For 400 kV network maximum voltage is 440 kV. For 220 kV network maximum voltage is 242 kV. For 150 kV network maximum voltage is 162 kV. For 90 kV network maximum voltage is 97 kV. For 60 kV network maximum voltage is 65 kV. The minimum operating voltage values are as follows: For 400 kV network minimum voltage is 340 kV. For 220 kV network minimum voltage is 187 kV. For 150 kV network minimum voltage is 138 kV. For 90 kV network minimum voltage is 83 kV. 34
CIGRE WG C1.9 For 60 kV network minimum voltage is 55 kV. Operating range frequency: During N-1 contingency conditions, the maximum and minimum permissible frequencies are 50.4 Hz and 49.6 Hz respectively. In the case of a severe incident, the maximum and minimum permissible frequency limits are 52 Hz and 47.5 Hz respectively. Transmission Network Planning Probabilistic Approach. The probabilistic approach is seldom used in planning studies directly by the concerned transmission system operators (TSOs) or vertically integrated undertakings (VIUs). However, the probabilistic approach is being widely used in interconnection studies among the North African Countries (e.g., the MEDRING and the ELTAM studies). Unless specific data is provided, the basic assumptions adopted concerning the unavailability of the transmission system, are given in the Table 4.3 below.
Table 4.3: Line Forced Unavailability Rate
Voltage Level [kV] 500400 220 15090 Unavailability Rate [p.u./100 km] 0.005 0.0025 0.005
As no reliability data on the transformers is usually available, standard hypotheses for these values are assumed. It is assumed that the transformers have an availability of 99.5%. Also for reactors and capacitors, records on their reliability are not normally available; hence, in this case too, standard hypotheses for these values are adopted. More specifically, it is assumed that the reactive compensation equipment has an availability of 99.5%. Three different weather conditions, Normal, Bad and Stormy, are considered and, unless otherwise specified, the parameters used to simulate the weather effect are set out in Table 4.4 below:
Table 4.4: Parameters of Weather Model
Weather Conditions Hours Ratio [p.u.] Normal 0.9667 Coefficients [p.u.] 1.0
35
CIGRE WG C1.9
Bad Stormy 0.03 0.003 10.0 15.0
As an indicator of the system adequacy, the annual value of Expected Energy Not Supplied (EENS) due to unavailability in the transmission system and/or generation considering the constraints represented by the transport capacities of the lines and active power limits of the power plants is used. A threshold value 10-4 p.u. for the EENS index related to insufficiency of the transmission system due to a reduction in the transmission capacity of the network is assumed. Economic Evaluation in Transmission-Generation Planning The price of EENS for an economic evaluation can vary from 0.5 USD/kWh up to 2 USD/kWh. The generation margins and the loss of load probability adopted for the reliability study are the following: Minimum generation margin reserve: 20%. Loss of load probability (LOLP): < 48 hrs/year.
4.5
Algeria has an extensive AC network, covering both the densely populated coastal areas and also the unpopulated centre of the country, where the gas and oil industries are. According to Sonelgaz, the total length of its transmission network is approximately 18 000 km. This includes lines with voltage levels down to 60 kV. The length of the 400 kV transmission lines sum up to less than 1 300 km. Sonelgaz are currently making strong efforts to upgrade these grid lines. Reinforcements of crossborder connections with neighbouring countries Morocco, Tunisia and Libya, also on the basis of 400 kV technology, are progressing. Algeria also has plans for submarine electricity links with its European neighbours on the other shore of the Mediterranean.[1]
4.6
Financing Issues
Transmission investments are mostly financed through transmission fees, loans, internal sources and very few by private investors. Economic Criteria (capital investment, internal rate of return (IRR), net present value (NPV)), in transmission network planning are applied. In the economic evaluations, the reduction in the cost of the losses is usually estimated, but additional benefits related to the reduction of congestion costs are also taken into account as well as the increase of transmission service revenues. Generally, the TSOs or the VIUs have not defined the cost of EENS and the applied values are agreed 36
CIGRE WG C1.9 for each study among the local experts and also taking into account the experience of the Consulting companies, whenever they are involved in the execution of transmission system studies. Usually, the undelivered electricity costs across North Africa range between 0.5 and 2USD/kWh. Market-oriented transmission investments (merchant lines) and investments from a regional perspective are not applied. National transmission networks are mainly planned according to technical considerations and economic rationalization of new investments.
37
CIGRE WG C1.9
4.7
Human Resources
Sonelgaz controls the generation, transmission, and distribution of electricity in Algeria. In July 2002, Sonatrach and Sonelgaz formed a joint venture, to pursue the development of alternative electricity sources, including solar, wind, and biomass. Since 2002, there has been considerable private investment in new electricity generating capacity in Algeria. AEC (Algerian Energy Company) contracted with Anadarko and General Electric to build the countrys first privately financed, gas-fired power plant at Hassi Berkine. In August 2003, Frances Alstom agreed to construct a 300-MW power plant at FKirina. Canadas SNC-Lavalin won a contract in July 2003 to design and build an 825-MW, combined cycle power plant in Skikda. In 2004, SNCLavalin also won a tender to build a 1 200-MW, combined cycle power plant in Tipasa. In early 2005, Siemens announced that it would build a 500-MW, gas-fired plant in Berrouaghia: tje caility should become operational by the end of 2006.[2] Only 6.6% of the population has received higher education at the university level. Illiteracy is high, 32% of the population, mostly women and people living in rural areas.
4.8
References
1. http://www.wupperinst.org/uploads/tx_wiprojekt/Algeria_final_report.pdf, pages 27 and 28 2. http://www.mbendi.com/indy/powr/af/al/p0005.htm
38
CIGRE WG C1.9
5.
5.1
Angola
Electricity Industry Structure
Angola is located in sub-Saharan Africa as shown in Figure 5.1. The northern part of the country is bordered by the Democratic Republic of the Congo while the eastern part is bordered by Zambia. The southern part of the country is bordered by both Namibia and Botswana. Angola is still rebuilding infrastructure destroyed during the countrys 27-year civil war that came to an end in 2002. Although the country is beginning to see growth and stability, challenges persist. Around 70% of the population still lives on less than US$1/day; the World Bank ranks Angola as one of the most difficult places in the world to do business as a result of bureaucracy, and there are persistent allegations of lack of transparency in public finance [1]. The Ministry of Energy and Water (MINEA) governs the electricity sector. In principle, the national power utility, Empresa Nacional de Electricidade (ENE), is responsible for generation, transmission and distribution throughout the country (excluding distribution in the capital city of Luanda). ENE operates three different power systems the northern, central and southern systems each stretching in an easterly direction from the ports of Luanda, Lobito and Namibe respectively. The other main player in the electricity supply industry (ESI) is Empresa de Distribuo de Electricidade de Luanda
39
CIGRE WG C1.9 (EDEL), the distribution utility for the capital city Luanda. It is estimated that EDELs sales presently account for more than 60% of total electricity sales in Angola. Three separate electrical systems are used to supply electricity in Angola. The Northern System supplies the provinces of Luanda, Bengo, Kuanza-Norte, Malange and Kuanza-Sul. The Central System provides for the provinces of Benguela, Huambo and parts of Bie. The Southern System supplies the Huila and Namibe provinces. The government aims to link the systems there to create a national grid through the Southern African Power Pool (SAPP). Industry experts have suggested that Angola needs to ease state controls on electricity prices and offer incentives to attract private investment [1]. In addition to the three ENE systems that cover only 13 of Angolas 18 provinces, ENE operates minor isolated networks in Cabinda, Malange, Uige, Moxico, Kwanza Sul and Bie provinces. Local authorities operate isolated power systems in four provinces (Lunda Sul, Cunene, Cuando Cubango and Zaire), while the state-owned diamond company Endiama operates the system in the Lunda Norte province. In addition, due to considerable problems with reliability and quality of supply, private companies and individuals operate a large number of diesel generators throughout the country. GAMEK, a project company established for the development of hydropower resources on the Kwanza River, presently operates the recently commissioned Capanda hydroelectric plant (present capacity 260 MW, envisaged final capacity 520 MW). Apart from a few small 33 kV and 11 kV cross-border connections in the south to NamPower (Namibia), Angolas power system is presently isolated from the Southern African Power Pool (SAPP) regional grid. An illustration of the electricity supply industry (ESI) is presented in Figure 5.2 below:
40
CIGRE WG C1.9 The ESI is basically a monopoly industry, although other players have defined roles in certain geographical areas or for certain specific applications (e.g. GAMEK). No plans exist at this stage to change the ESI structure into a more competitive market arrangement, although an ESI reform seminar in October 2004 recommended that a plan be developed for institutional and market reform of the sector. Due to Angolas transmission system not being connected to neighbouring countries, Angola is not an operating member of the SAPP. This would change if the Westcor project between the Democratic Republic of Congo, Angola, Namibia, Botswana and South Africa is realized. This is basically the proposed development of a western transmission corridor through the countries mentioned. However, this project has encountered political difficulties in reaching agreement between the countries involved and these will need to be resolved for the project to progress. The ESI presently operates under several Acts of Parliament. The most important is the Lei Geral de Electricidade, Lei No.14 A/96 of 31 May 1996 (General Law of Electricity). The Law sets out the tariff system and pricing principles, establishes the National Energy Fund to facilitate the electrification of the country, and sets up a concessionaire system for regulating the entry of the private sector into the ESI. This law also enabled the establishment of an electricity regulator, the Institute for Electricity Regulation (IRSE), formally created in 2002. A Multi-sector Rehabilitation and Reconstruction Programme (MRRP) is to be implemented in two phases.
5.2
The electrical system in Angola is disjointed and is undergoing repairs from damage incurred during many years of war. While a load study may predict load growth as a trend of gradual increases over time, the actual increases will most likely come in discrete steps as transmission lines become reconnected or substation transformers are repaired. Load growth in Luanda will most likely occur as a gradual increase as the electricity supply becomes more reliable and economic activity increases. In the rest of the country, the increases in load growth will most likely occur in discrete steps as communities become reconnected to the system, generation is repaired and electricity supply becomes available. This will be especially true of municipalities that have distribution in place and are waiting to reconnect to the system. Municipalities that have their own thermal generation may want to shut it down to benefit from the less expensive power generated by combined hydro and thermal generators. Discrete step increases will also be the result of new industrial loads from new facilities being built or the expansion of existing factories [2]. In developing the following assessment of system expansion, consultants relied on several sources of information. MINEA issued a development strategy of the electric sector in July 2002. The study forecasts increases in generation (GWh) and capacity (MW) coming on line for 2006, 2011 and 2016. Note that although well written, this Electric Sector Strategy suffers from a lack of data, no quantification of market demand factors, isolation from economic indices or strategies and, therefore, 41
CIGRE WG C1.9 its projections may be unrealistic. Capacity expansion plans were also determined from information gathered during meetings held by consultants while in country in June of 2003, and are presented in the Emergency Response Study for generation capacity expansion and transmission line construction. The expansion plans reported from the meeting of June 2003 are a compilation of projects already in construction or tendering, and did not appear to be part of an overall balanced strategy for the country. ENE has already expressed concern about reconnecting Huambo, a former industrial centre, because the generation capacity in the Central System, particularly at Biopio, will not be sufficient to support the increased load, while there is an excess of generation in the North System. In Lunda Sul, a 20 MW hydroelectric plant is being built by a private investor (Alrosa Mining) to provide 18 MW of power to the local diamond mine and 2 MW to the surrounding area. Increased economic activity supporting the diamond mine may require additional generation, which can be accommodated with careful planning [2]. Table 5.1 shows the annual peak demand growing at 12% p.a. (Consultants estimates).
Table 5.1: Angola Annual Peak Demand, Growth at 12% p.a. [2]
2003 North Installed Capacity, MW Peak Load, MW Excess (Deficit), MW Central Installed Capacity, MW Peak Load, MW Excess (Deficit), MW South Installed Capacity, MW Peak Load, MW Excess (Deficit), MW Other Installed Capacity, MW Peak Load, MW Excess (Deficit), MW Total Installed Capacity, MW Peak Load, MW Excess (Deficit), MW Energy, GWh @65% LF MINEA Projection 450 352 98 2004 970 475 496 2703 2804 970 721 249 4105 4007 970 842 128 4797 970 910 60 5181 970 1061 (90) 6043 5506 28 28 0 48 35 13 48 52 (4) 48 60 (12) 48 65 (17) 48 76 (28) 27 27 0 158 34 124 158 56 102 158 65 93 158 70 88 158 82 76 37 37 0 121 47 75 121 76 45 121 91 31 121 98 23 121 114 7 358 260 98 643 359 284 643 537 106 643 626 17 643 676 (33) 643 789 (146) 2006 2011 2013 2014 2016
42
CIGRE WG C1.9
5.3
Figure 5.5 shows energy mix of hydro, thermal grid and thermal isolated. Hydroelectric facilities generate more than two-thirds of Angolas electricity. The Matala dam, which began operations in 2001 on the Cunene River, is the main source of electricity in south west Angola. The Cambambe dam (180 MW) on the Kwanza River, the Mabubas dam (17.8 MW) on the Dande River, and diesel generators, are the main sources of electricity generation in the north of the country. A 24 MW dam is being built by a diamond company, Catoca, on the Tchicapa River in north eastern Angola, and the construction of a 600 MW dam in the Uije province was announced in June 2004 [3]. The Emergency Response Study focused on rehabilitation and repairs of installed generation and transmission. There will be an excess of generation capacity after units 1&2 of Capanda Dam come on line in 2004. Repairs to transmission lines, as well as the completion of new transmission lines planned for supplying Luanda, will greatly improve the reliability of the system, particularly in the north. Planning for the development of an integrated system should commence in the mid-term so that the first steps toward the overall system can begin when the rehabilitation programme is coming to a close. Integral to this planning is a detailed load forecast, a stability study and a reliability study. The results of these studies are necessary as a foundation for the plans to connect the North System to the Central and South Systems, as well as to connect the Isolated Systems and the provincial capitals [2] The construction of a hydroelectric facility at Capanda on the Kwanza River has been partially completed. Work on the 520 MW plant began in the mid-1980s, but was suspended due to the civil war. The first of four planned hydraulic turbines began generating electricity in January 2004; a second turbine is expected to be operational in April 2005. The completed Capanda project will nearly double Angolas electricity generating capacity. The government plans to create a national grid, linking the three regional electricity sectors, and establishing linkages with neighbouring countries. The additional generating capacity from the rehabilitation and greenfields projects, together with the national grid system, could enable Angola to become an exporter of electricity to neighbouring countries [3]. Angola employs a deterministic approach for generation planning and maintains a reserve margin greater than 15%. In terms of transmission planning, the N-1 criterion is employed in most cases.
43
CIGRE WG C1.9
Energy Mix
8% 30% 62%
Hydro
(Thermal grid)
Thermal (isolated)
5.4
As the power sector emerges from the rehabilitation phase, there will be a renewed emphasis on long term planning and the development of a modern integrated power sector. In this regard, there will be the co-ordinated development of hydro and natural gas generation based on a least cost strategy which reflects national energy policy goals. The Government of Angola (GOA) will implement the Electricity Law allowing for eventual private sector participation in new generation and in both the management of ENE and EDEL. An electricity regulator will be established with the authority to issue licenses and approve tariffs and in general improve the transparency of the sector. The GOA in conjunction with the two utilities, ENE and EDEL, will seek to improve their commercial and financial operation with the goal of creating self-sustaining and financially viable entities. In this regard the GOA, through an independent regulator, will seek to reduce all subsidies and establish economically and financially remunerative tariffs. With private sector participation and self-sustaining operations the system will expand, providing improved access [2]. The GOA will play a critical role in leading the development and reform of the power sector in the mid to long term. The key GOA institution will continue to be the MINEA. However MINEA will need to evolve and grow from its current structure. The principle roles envisioned for MINEA will be: Setting policy initiatives to drive sector reform. Amending the legal framework for the sector as it develops. Providing medium and long term forecasts of demand and supply, and maintaining a sector data base.
44
CIGRE WG C1.9 Being the lead institution in the reform and restructuring of the sector. Economic assessment of sector issues. Technology assessments and development of energy efficiency programmes. Co-ordination with other GOA institutions regarding the development of energy policy. The roles currently held by MINEA in the area of licensing would eventually be transferred to the Regulator. Thus MINEA would be structured into two divisions: the first being Policy and Planning, the other being Technology and Energy Management. This view of MINEA differs from that currently held by MINEA which sees itself maintaining control over the power sector through the issuance of licenses and concessions for the sector. Based on the above, there are several areas for TA support which would prepare MINEA for its evolving role in the sector in the mid to long term. The TA would build on the basic policy analysis and planning tools that were identified in the Emergency Response Study as part of the short term TA to be provided to MINEA. The recommended TA programmes are as follows [2]: Private sector participation in the power sector. Power sector restructuring strategy. IPP development framework. Energy efficiency programme development. Renewable energy alternatives.
5.5
The following are technical issues as stated in [2]: Only 20 per cent of the population has access to electricity. Significant non-technical losses through illegal connections. Significant technical losses resulting in system instability and power quality problems. Electricity tariffs are not cost recovering and are highly subsidized, resulting in losses for both ENE and EDEL. Lack of system planning to focus on the longer term development of the sector. Significant economic cost associated with the investment in standby generating capacity due to the unreliability of the system. Need to attract significant private investment for growth. Inadequate management and commercial processes.
45
CIGRE WG C1.9 Need to rationalize human resource requirements. Need for Government of Angola (GOA) to re-allocate budgetary resources from the power sector to the social and public services.
5.6
Financing Issues
Angola and Namibia signed a bilateral co-operation agreement in the field of energy and have considered the development of a hydroelectric facility on the Kunene River. Two sites that have been considered are at Epupa Falls and at the Baynes Mountains, although the Epupa Falls location has met opposition from environmental groups and local communities. The results of a US$7 million international feasibility study of the Epuqa Falls project indicated that the Epupa Falls site would represent the best option economically. However, the displacement of the local Himba people coupled with the environmentally sensitive location of the site has meant that progress has been slow. Namibias NamPower believes the Epupa Falls site is the best technical and financial option and would like to see the project in operation. [3]. The Emergency Response Study identified a future long term plan for the Western Corridor Project a 3000 MW line from Inga in the Democratic Republic of the Congo. This line may be a 765 kV AC line or a high voltage DC line to supply power to South Africa through Namibia. This project has been under consideration for some time by the SAPP. Within the next ten years there is significant potential for building generation capacity for export. As stated before there is an oversupply of generation capacity in the North System, especially when Units 3&4 of the Capanda Dam come on line. [2]. This generation capacity could be used as reserve on the system to cover scheduled and unscheduled outages or, if there is sufficient other reserve, could be considered for export. Furthermore, there is approximately 16 000 MW of hydro potential that awaits development. There is no tie in the transmission system at the border with Zambia or the Democratic Republic of the Congo, nor are there plans to build a tie at present. There is a tie to Namibia at Ondjina in Cunene Province; however, this is a small point to point connection.
46
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 5.4: More than 7000 MW hydro potential along Kwanza River
This said, the National Energy Directorate (DNE) asserts that in the highest levels of Government there exists recognition that renewable energy will be important to Angolas future. Although DNEs focus is on solar photovoltaic technologies, Angola has a large and, yet to be estimated, potential for small and micro hydro resources. For larger hydro resources the Portuguese did extensive surveys and modelling, reporting a potential hydro generation capacity of over 150 000 GWh/year, indicating that the current hydro exploitation of 1 200 GWh/year represents less than 1% [2] .
5.7
Human Resources
ENE, the state-owned electric utility, is doing its own generation, transmission and distribution planning. Some external consultants do carry out some work affecting how the network will be expanded. The following are examples of work carried out by external consultants. Nexant, under its contract with USAID, has been assigned the task of conducting a diagnostic needs assessment of the energy sector in Angola. Energy is fundamental to the economic development of the country. Currently, the majority of the population does not have accessible, reliable supplies of energy. The objectives of this task are to determine the critical areas for technical assistance to Angolas energy sector to support rehabilitation, restoration and 47
CIGRE WG C1.9 expansion of energy services, to support economic development and to facilitate and promote private sector investments in order to develop a commercially viable energy sector [2]. Odebrecht, a Brazilian construction company, has partially completed the construction of a hydroelectric facility at Capanda on the Kwanza River.
5.8
References
1. http://www.aed.org/Projects/AESP.cfm 2. http://pdf.usaid.gov/pdf_docs/PNACW792.pdf 3. http://www.indexmundi.com/g/g.aspx?c=ao&v=81
48
CIGRE WG C1.9
6.
6.1
Benin and Togo are adjacent countries as shown in Figure 6.1. Togo lies on the western side while Benin lies on the eastern side. Benin is bordered by Nigeria on the eastern side while on the western side Togo is bordered by Ghana. The northern side of both counties is bordered by Burkina Faso, while the north-east of Benin is bordered by Niger. The total combined population of both countries is estimated to be 14.3 million.
With the change of Benins name on 30 November 1975, the Socit Dahomenne dElectricit et dEau (SDEE) became Socit Bninoise dElectricit et dEau (SBEE), a public industrial and trading company. However, long before the Compagnie Centrale de Distribution dEnergie Electrique (CCDEE) was ceded to the Beninese Government, Dahomey and Togo had set up a joint electricity production and transmission structure, Communaut Electrique du Bnin (CEB). Since its inception in 1973, the CEB has assumed the responsibility as sole supplier of electricity to the two electrical power distributors, the SBEE in Benin and the Compagnie dEnergie Electrique du Togo (CEET) in Togo [3]. Within the framework of the electricity sector reform, the following bills have been drafted and are currently under debate: The Electric Power Code of the Republic of Benin, and, The Statutes relating to the establishment, organization and functions of the Regulatory Authority for the Power and Water Resources sectors in the Republic of Benin. 49
CIGRE WG C1.9 The distribution companies operate their own small diesel generators in Lome, Cotonou and the northern regions of both countries. However they are required to purchase all of their residual electricity needs from CEB, which act as a monopoly supplier of generation and transmission services[1]. The regulatory framework governing electricity production and distribution activities in Benin is based on two legal instruments: the Benino-Togo Electricity Code, and the Benin Electricity Code. The Benino-Togo Electricity Code, the revised version of which was adopted in 2005 by the Beninese National Assembly, gives the monopoly of electricity supply to the CEB. The Mission of the CEB, as defined by the Benino-Togo Electricity Code, is to produce and exploit electric power, in accordance with the regulations governing industrial and commercial corporations as exclusive transmitters, all over the territories of the two states. This monopoly ensures the privilege of being the sole buyer for the needs of the two states. The Code has also opened up the activities of electric power production, hitherto restricted to private operators. However, regarding power meant for sale, the CEB remains the sole buyer of such production. In areas outside the scope of CEB, the SBEE acts as the sole buyer [3]. Transmission Figure 6.2 shows a map of CEBs generation, transmission and SBEE distribution resources. Benins high voltage (HV) power transmission system forms an interconnected network with that of Togo. It is mainly composed of 161 kV lines and small segments of 63 kV lines which are principally under the control of SBEE. The 161 kV interconnected network managed by CEB, is basically located in the southern part of the country where more than 90% of the energy is consumed. The northern provinces of the country derive their power supply from isolated diesel stations and Yeripaos hydro micro-station near Natitingou which are directly connected to the distribution network system. Benins 63 kV transmission system consists of underground cables (Vdoko-Gbgamey stretching over 3 km and Gbgamey-Akpakpa covering 5.5 km) interconnecting the west and east suburbs of Cotonou. Overhead lines supply power to Ouandos substations in Porto Novo from Akpakpa in Cotonou, as well as Dassas substation in the Zou province, from Bohicon. This last line is planned for expansion beyond Dassa up to Save [2]. Table 6.1 shows the configuration of the CEB and SBEE transmission network in Benin.
50
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 6.1: Configuration of CEB and SBEE Transmission Network in Benin [2]
Destination Subststation Voltage (kV) & Configuration
Source Substation 161 kV Lines Mome Hagou Mome Hagou Avakpa Vedeko Sakete Nangbeto Nangbeto
Length (km)
Operator
63 kV Lines Mome Hagou Vedeko Gbegamey Akpakpa Bohicon Lokossa Gbegamey Akpakpa Ouando Dassa 1x63 1x63 1x63 1x63 1x63 Total Length 13.6 3 5.5 31.3 75 128.4 CEB CEB SBEE SBEE SBEE
The main sources of power supply to Benins interconnected network are the Mom Hagou and Angbto source substations, both located in Togo. The construction of a source substation in Sakete within the framework of the new 330 kV Ikeja West (Nigeria) Sakt (Benin) line project, 76 km in length, will help to reinforce the transforming capacity of the Benin network. The major transforming substations are located at Lokossa, near the Togolese border, Cotonou-Vdoko, Avakpa, Bohicon and Onigbolo. Ouandos substation in Porto Novo has its source in Cotonou-Vdokos substation and from the busbars linked to Akpakpas thermal plant [2].
51
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 6.2: CEBs Generation, Transmission and SBEE Distribution Resouces [1]
6.2
Table 6.2 shows the demand forecast used for CEB planning. The peak demand was expected to grow from 191 MW in 2003 to 448 MW in 2015, which corresponds to an average rate of growth of 7.4% per year (607 MW, average growth 7% per year, by 2020) [1].
Table 6.2: CEB Demand Forecast [1]
2003 Peak Demand (MW) CEB Energy (GWh) 191 1239 2007 230 1844 2011 352 2220 2015 448 2823
52
CIGRE WG C1.9 Table 6.3 shows the demand forecast for Benin. Power consumption in Benin has been subject to sharp growth, recording an average of 9.65% over the past 10-year period prior to 2005. Statistics obtained from CEB foresee an average peak power demand growth of 8.91% between 2006 and 2015 in the Benin Republic [2]
Table 6.3: SBEE Electricity Demand Forecast [2]
Year GWh MW Growth (%) 2006 821 136 14.4 2007 899 149 9.5 2008 975 161 8.5 2009 1058 175 8.5 2010 1148 190 8.5 2011 1236 205 7.7 2012 1332 221 7.7 2013 1434 238 7.7 2014 1546 256 7.7 2015 1665 276 7.8
6.3
In 2002, the peak load on the interconnected network CEB-SBEE-Togo Electricite was 178 MW, compared to 161 MW in 2001. The energy demand was 1 129 GWh, 7% higher than the 1 055 GWh demand recorded in 2001. Most of the demand is concentrated in the large cities Lome (36%) and Cotonou (37%) [1]. CEB operates the following generation resources: Nangbeto hydro station in Togo with an installed capacity of 2 x 32.5 MW. Two combustion turbines of 20 MW each, one at Lome and one at Cotonou. Table 6.4 shows CEB generation supply statistics for 2002. The table shows that at present CEB imports about 75% of its power from Ghana and Cte dIvoire and the remaining 25% is generated locally [1].
Table 6.4: CEB Generation Statistics for 2002 [1]
GWh Import from VRA (Ghana) Import from CIE (Cte dIvoire) Nangbeto Hydro TAG CEB at Cotonou TAG CEB at Lome SBEE Electro-Togo Togo Electricite Total 611 233 166 55 28 17 16 3 1129 % Energy 54 21 15 5 3 2 1 Firm MW 80 30 50 20 0 15 195
53
CIGRE WG C1.9 CEBs generation plan includes the following priorities [1]: Adjarala Hydropower Plant. The Adjarala Hydro Plant consists of a dam, reservoir and powerhouse with an installed capacity of 2 x 49 MW, which produces 333 GWh per year (38 MW average). CEB intends to increase the installed capacity to 147 MW, which will then produce 356 GWh per year. CEB plans to complete the project in 2013, depending on the funding and the availability of alternative sources of generation. CEB considered that the cost of the project is competitive with the thermal alternative. The Arab Bank and the Chinese are involved. Power Purchase from Electrotogo. Electrotogo is a private energy producer in Lome, which plans to rehabilitate and operate a 40 MW diesel power plant at Lome Port. West Africa Gas Pipeline (WAGP). WAGP is a new project to deliver gas from Nigeria to Benin, Togo and Ghana. The pipeline will extend all the way to the Volta River Authoritys (VRA) Takoradi power station in western Ghana. CEB will convert its Lome and Cotonou turbine plants to gas, Electrotogo plans to use Nigerian gas for its plant. WAGP gas is expected to fuel the expansion of generating resources in the CEB territory for years to come. IPP Krake. There are plans to develop a new IPP thermal power station operating on natural gas at Krake on the coast near the Benin-Nigeria border. The project includes the following facilities: o a gas pipeline to the plant from the Aje gas field located offshore in Nigeria 10 km from the Benin-Nigeria border. o a power plant with 3 x 40 MW combustion turbines; and a 40-km 161-kV line to CEBs Sakete substation. The project is contracted to provide 75 MW of capacity and 570 GWh of energy per year. The status of this IPP development is uncertain. Imported power. CEB plans to diversify its imports between NEPA (75 MW), VRA (up to 85 MW) and CIE (20 MW). CIE offers the greatest potential power sales to CEB; however, wheeling across the VRA network limits CEBs access to CIEs energy surplus. CEBs transmission plan includes the following priorities [1]: CEB-NEPA Interconnection. NEPA will construct a single-circuit 330 kV line from Ikeja West connecting to CEBs 161 kV grid at Sakete substation in Togo. CEB will build the Sakete substation for 330/161 kV operation. The new interconnection was expected to be in operation in 2005. CEB has committed to purchase 75 MW of power from NEPA once the connection is in place.
54
CIGRE WG C1.9 161 kV Rehabilitation. The aging lines Lome-Cotonou-Onigbolo will be rehabilitated to reduce losses and improve operations. CEB will reinforce some of the existing substations. Interconnecting North Togo/North Benin. CEB will extend its 161 kV network to major load centres in the north including Kara, Djougou, Parakou, Natitingou, Bembereke and Mango. The project consists of 616 km of 161 kV line and five new injection substations. The World Bank is providing some funding for the project. 161 kV Bohicon-Oningbolo Line. This new 70 km line will provide the capacity for CEB to evacuate power imported from Nigeria during the rehabilitation of the Lome-Cotonou-Onigbolo lines. The line is also important for the North Togo/North Benin interconnection and as a backup route to evacuate power from Nangbeto. The WAPP project to build a 330 kV line across CEBs service territory is not included in CEBs own planning studies because CEB does not require the new line to continue to operate its own relatively small system. CEBs transmission plan is considered adequate for its own needs. However, the transmission plan does not satisfy the N-1 criterion, and the existing facilities will most likely continue to operate heavily loaded, with minimal backup in the event of outages.
6.4
Benin trades electricity with Nigeria and Togo. Benin exported 142 300 GWh to Togo over a 20 year period as a relatively free trade scenario exists. Imports to Togo from Nigeria, were 152 500 GWh. Similarly, large amounts of MW reserves are also traded in the free trade scenario. However, in the case of MW reserves, a significant amount of trade still takes place when there is no energy. CEB is responsible for planning and procuring the generation and transmission resources needed to meet the requirements of Togo Electricite and SBEE. The distribution companies operate their own small diesel generators in Lome, Cotonou and in the northern regions of both countries. However, they are required to purchase all of their residual electricity needs from CEB, which acts as a monopoly supplier of generation and transmission services [1].
55
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 6.5: CEB Generation Statistics for 2002 [1]
GWh Import from VRA (Ghana) Import from CIE (Cte dIvoire) Nangbeto Hydro TAG CEB at Cotonou TAG CEB at Lome SBEE Electro-Togo Togo Electricite Total 611 233 166 55 28 17 16 3 1129 % Energy 54 21 15 5 3 2 1 Firm (MW) 80 30 50 20 0 15 195
CEB is highly dependent on energy imports over its interconnection with VRA via the 161 kV double circuit Akosombo-Lome line. The estimated maximum transfer capacity of the line is 90 MW during peak hours and 130 MW during other hours. Both circuits typically operate close to maximum allowable load in violation of N-1 criteria [1]. Table 4.5 shows the hypothetical generation capacity deficit for CEB in 2002 with the AkosomboLome line out of service. With one circuit out, CEB shows a generation deficit of 31 MW. With two circuits out, the deficit is 116 MW, or 65% of the system load. An unanticipated two circuit outage normally causes total collapse of the CEB system [1].
6.5
Since the 1970s, successive governments have been faced with the challenge of promoting electric power as a key factor of economic and social development by ensuring its availability at cheapest cost. This ensures the security of persons and goods, while accelerating rural electrification. The aging transmission network is a contributing factor to the reduction of the quality of service by the SBEE. The transmission lines linking Benin and Togo have been in service since the early 1970s. The AR 350 conductor that was used reached its optimum power transfer limit in 2005. This means that even in the event of an increase in the electricity available from the VRA and the CIE, Benin would not be able to import more electricity through the existing lines [3]. The transmission and installation network does not always meet all expectations due to the obsolete condition of some of the equipment, causing losses on the network, low voltage and erratic power outages. Moreover, customers often complain of billing errors. The embarrassment caused to households accounts for the complete discredit of the company among the Beninese populace.
56
CIGRE WG C1.9 The position of SBEE could be summarized as follows at the beginning of 2007 [3]: A production crisis exacerbated by low water levels at the various dams. Use of costly alternative sources of power (hiring of generating sets to produce thermal power) with the attendant huge exploitation losses. Unbalanced books, resulting not only from the energy crisis but also from unorthodox management practices. A very poor image of the SBEE among consumers because of the practice of load shedding and poor quality service. Benin, Togo and Nigeria had recently inaugurated a power cable linking the three countries national grids and aimed at improving the insufficient electricity infrastructure in West Africa. Nigeria will increase its power exports and is expected to generate annual revenues of about 14.4 million (US dollar) from the power interconnection. The 70-kilometre power cable is joining the Electrical Community of Benin (CEB), which groups Benin and neighbouring Togo, with Nigeria. The power interconnection will have an initial capacity of 80 megawatts, which is due to be extended in the near future according to a Togolese government release. With the new interconnection, the large Nigerian electricity network is connected to the wider West African network. While flows mostly are expected to go out of Nigerian towards Benin and Togo, even being able to reach Ghana and beyond supplies are also able to go the other way. One of the most important missions of the interconnection thus is stabilizing power availability in the entire region. [4]
6.6
Financing Issues
Benin electricity project lenders include; Kreditanstalt fur Wiederaafbau (KFW), International Bank for reconstruction and development (IBRD), African Development Bank (AfDB), Kuwait Fund, Arab Bank for Economic Development in Africa (BADEA), Organization of the Petroleum Exporting Countries (OPEC) Fund, and United Nations Development Programme (UNDP). Besides the VRA and CIE, due to pressure from the Beninese and Togolese Governments, the CEB arranged for the development of the Nangbeto hydro-electric facility in Togo. The total project cost of CFA F50 billion (US$ 100 million), was financed by the World Bank as well as the Arab, German and French banks. The Nangbeto Dam hydro-electric facility has been operational since 1987, with a capacity of 65 MW, and supplies approximately 14% of all the CEBs energy needs [3].
57
CIGRE WG C1.9
6.7
CEB is responsible for planning generation and transmission, however, some external consultants do carry out some work on the expansion of the network. The following are some of the organizations that are involved in planning: WAPP Information and Coordination Centre [2]. The purpose of the study is to summarize the statistical data and analyse the situation of power systems within WAPP member countries. It was prepared from statistical data set out in the annual reports and other documents supplied by WAPP member utilities. It serves as support to WAPP member utilities, its governance bodies, its Secretariat as well as its partners, in search of information about WAPP member power utilities. Nexant for planning studies for the use of USAID and ECOWAS [1]. The purpose of the Regional Transmission Study is to evaluate the new cross-border transmission projects that are proposed for the West Africa interconnected power system over the planning horizon from 2004 to 2020. This is for the benefit of ECOWAS member countries, USAID, lenders and other donors.
6.8
References
1. West African Regional Transmission Study. Volume 2: Master Plan. 2. www.ecowapp.org/WAPP%20PDFs/KPI-Eng.pdf. 3. www.cipbenin.org/english/version/Img/pdf/electric_power_supply.pdf 4. Country Information from intranet sources 5. http://www.afrol.com/articles/24395
58
CIGRE WG C1.9
7.
7.1
Botswana
Electricity Industry Structure
Botswana is a landlocked country in southern Africa that neighbours Zimbabwe, South Africa, Namibia and Zambia. Total land area is 581730 km and has a population of 1.5 million. About 38% of the population has access to electricity; rural areas account for 18%. The ESI structure in Botswana is shown in Figure 7.1 below. The electricity supply industry in Botswana is under the state-owned national electricity utility, Botswana Power Company (BPC). The corporation operates under the Ministry of Minerals, Energy and Water Resources (MMEWR). It has a monopoly over generation, transmission, distribution, and importation of electricity under the Botswana Power Corporations Act of 1971. The Department of Electrical and Mechanical Services (DEMS), under the Ministry of Works, operates isolated diesel generators to supply government institutions such as schools, clinics and offices [1].
About 70% of Botswanas electricity is imported, mainly from Eskom of South Africa, the Short Term Energy Market (STEM) of the SAPP, and Hidroelctrica De Cahora Bassa (HCB) of Mozambique, through regional interconnections to meet demand peaks. The proportion of internal generation to imports in terms of total energy supplied (2005) was 30.9% to 69.1% respectively. Through the Public Enterprise Evaluation and Privatization Agency, PEEPA, the Government appointed a Consultant to review and advise on Appropriate Regulatory Reforms for Infrastructure and Utility Sectors in Botswana.
59
CIGRE WG C1.9
7.2
In 2004/05 the Botswana maximum electricity demand growth rate was 2.1%. During the same year the GDP grew significantly by 8.3%, compared to a growth rate of 3.4% recorded during the previous year (2003/04). The maximum demand recorded in 2005 was 402 MW, while the revenue increased by 8.9%. The total number of BPC customers stands 136216. Total units sold were 2416 GWh (2005). The mining industry which is the largest consumer of electricity, accounts for about 43.3% of consumption. Commercial users and households account for 25.4% and 22.3% respectively. The government accounts for the remaining 9%.
The fast economic growth of Botswana has resulted in a total energy consumption increase. The energy sent out by BPC in 2005 was 2731 GWh, and the projected energy sent out in 2012 is 3637 GWh, which represents an average annual growth of 4%. The system peak demand was 402 MW in 2005, and the projected peak demand is 609 MW by the year 2012, with average annual growth of 5.1%. Load forecast methodologies adapted are: Trend analysis rural target electrification target end use analysis
60
CIGRE WG C1.9
GWh
2000
2005 Year
2010
2015
7.3
5.3.1 Generation criteria adopted by Botswana include: Probabilistic reserve margin greater than 15% fuel mix policy 5.3.2 Transmission criteria include: N-1 criterion is used distribution voltage (5%) frequency (0.5 Hz) 5.3.3 BPC owns and operates the Morupule Power Station, a coal-fired and dry-cooled power plant with an installed capacity of 132 MW (4x33 MW units). BPC operates a significant network of transmission and distribution lines to transport electricity from the power station or point of import to consumers.
61
CIGRE WG C1.9
7.4
The government has adopted an Integrated Energy Planning (IEP) process in order to meet the basic energy requirements of the economy. Table 6.1 gives a summary of key projects. The fast economic growth of the country has caused substantially high energy consumption, thus underlying the need for the expansion of energy supply. Also, in view of the backdrop that surplus power for the SADC region is projected to run out in the years 20072010, the Botswana Power Corporation is implementing a project for the expansion of generation capacity at the Morupule Power Station. Implementation of this project is expected to start during 2006/2007 and is planned to be completed in 2009/2010. The project will increase generation capacity by 300%, from 132 MW to 532 MW. Efforts are continuing to increase the power supply in the region, and one such initiative is the development of a power corridor by the establishment of Westcor, a company owned by the electricity utilities of Angola, Botswana, the Democratic Republic of Congo, Namibia and South Africa. This project has however encountered difficulties in 2009, with the withdrawal of the Democratic Republic of Congo. South Africa is also looking at supporting Botswana for new power station projects like Mmamabula Coal Fired power station.
Table 7.1: Short and Long Term Generation Projects
Short Term Generation Project Project Morupule Expansion Long Term Generation Project Mmamabula 3 600 MW Thermal 2015 Capacity 240 MW Type Coal Expected Year 2009
62
CIGRE WG C1.9
63
CIGRE WG C1.9
7.5
Most of Botswanas power supply has been dependent on electricity imports from South Africas Eskom. Because of the energy crisis in South Africa, they will not be able to export a stable energy source to Botswana from 2013. This increases the urgency for Botswana to increase their generation capabilities. The Government of Botswana (GoB) has looked at several alternative generation options to that of their main resource which is coal. These alternatives include: a coal bed methane plant, solar power and finally oil fired generation. These options were found to be not as viable as the coal fired options, because of the lack of resources, the demand and the high price of oil. The chosen generation method was coal with the undergoing Morupule B (4X150 MW) project which will be implemented next to the existing Morupule A coal fired plant. This was chosen as the most viable option mainly, because of the availability of coal from the on-site coal mine. Table 7.2 gives a summary of the considered alternatives and why they were not used.
Table 7.2: Project alternatives considered and reasons for rejection [2]
Alternative Generation a) No new generation capacity built / Reliance on power imports a) Botswana currently needs to import >80% of power consumed nationally a) Due to the regional power crisis, neighbouring countries will considerably reduce exports to Botswana over coming years and totally discontinue firm exports by 2013. Imports will therefore no longer be available over coming years and the economic cost of not meeting the demand for electricity would be enormous b) (i) Reserves not proven yet; (ii) Not possible to develop in scaleable and timely manner to meet supply deficits over medium term; (iii) Considerably more expensive and volatile (fuel would need to be imported). Would not provide the same level of energy self-reliance c) While a smaller plant size (400 MW) was originally considered, it was rejected to ensure that Botswana becomes self-sufficient. Implementing 4x150 MW units was identified as the least-cost configuration by taking into account the condition of the electricity grid d) Sub-critical CFBC boiler technology chosen over PC and CFBC supercritical due to the fact that CFBC is more suited to the type of coal and grid limitations in Botswana. Brief description Reasons for rejection
c) Plant size
d) Boiler technology
Transmission e) Voltage of transmission line e) 220 kV or 765 kV instead of 400 kV lines e) the 400 kV option was deemed to be optimal for Botswanas transmission system based on the 10 Year Transmission Development study conducted in 2006/7
64
CIGRE WG C1.9
7.6
Financing Issues
The Morupule B projects transmission lines and substations will be funded by the African Development Bank with assistance from the World Bank. The GoB will be the borrower of the loan while the BPC (which is 100% owned by the GoB) will be the beneficiary.
Table 7.3: Base Case financial and economic returns [2]
Item FIRR / FNPV @ 5.0% real (Base case) EIRR / ENPV @ 12.0% real (Base case) Base case returns 6.7% / Pula 2.3 billion (USD 328 million) 24.9% / Pula 11.9 billion (USD 1.7 billion)
Table 5.3 shows results of the financial and economic analyses for the Morupule B project. These figures show that the project is feasible and supports its implementation. The estimated financial internal rate of return (FIRR) is higher than BPCs estimated Weighted Average Cost of Capital (WACC) of 5.0% and the Base Case Economic internal rate of return (EIRR) is estimated at is also higher than the assumed Economic Opportunity Cost of Capital (EOCK) in Botswana of 12.0% [2].
7.7
Human Resources
The BPC will be responsible for the expansion of the Botswana power generation effort. They will appoint an external project manager to oversee the overall project. They will use their own resources as well as external and internal contractors for various tasks, such as: Safeguards will dealt with by an internally formed for implementation, planning and enforcement. A Chief Safeguard Officer and a Environmental Liaison Officer will be appointed to
oversee this task
The design and tender documents for the transmission lines and substations will be compiled by the
following internal consultants:
o Merz and McLellan (Botswana) o TAP/KEC Consortium o PB Power A consultant will also be recruited to oversee the construction of the transmission lines and substations. The construction of the power plant will be supervised by Fitchner while a design engineer will
be appointed for the water development system.
65
CIGRE WG C1.9
7.8
References
1. http://unfccc.int/ttclear/pdf/Workshops/Bonn/Botswana.pdf 2. http://www.afdb.org/fileadmin/uploads/afdb/Documents/Project-andOperations/Botswana%20-%20The%20Morupule%20B%20Power%20Project.pdf
66
CIGRE WG C1.9
8.
8.1
Burkina Faso
Electricity Industry Structure
Burkina Faso is situated in the heart of West Africa as shown in Figure 8.1. This is a country of plains covering 274 000 km2 between Mali and Niger in the north and Cte dIvoire, Ghana, Togo and Benin in the south. It has an estimated population of 13.3 million; with a rather low average density of 49 persons per km2. The countrys economy is still dominated by primary activities, which account for nearly 90% of its exports. Cotton (65%) and animal rearing are predominant. However, the contribution of the primary sector (approximately 39%) to the gross domestic product is surpassed by the tertiary sector which accounts for 44% of the total [3].
Since 1998 Burkina Faso has embarked on institutional, legal and regulatory reforms of its electricity sector, in order to create enabling conditions for private sector participation [2]. The following is a summary of powers and scope of intervention of the different stakeholders in the Burkina Faso power sector, as illustrated in Table 8.1.
67
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 8.1: Capacities and Duties of Electricity Sector Stakeholders in Burkina Faso [2]
Stakeholders 01 Ministry in charge of Energy. General energy management Duties and Scope of Intervention Formulates government sectoral policy Formulates and enforces technical regulation Supervises formulation of investment plans Authorizes and signs operation franchises and awards Approves and fixes tariffs Approves energy exchange agreements. 02 Ministry in charge of Trade Sits on the Commission in charge of price certification Consulted when tariffs are being fixed Regulates SONABEL fuel prices 03 Ministry in charge of Finance Member of Commission in charge of price certification Advises on Sector Policy relating to tariffs, financing and financial equilibrium. Participates in fixing of tariffs 04 Commission in charge of price certification Acts as joint committee Consulted when tariffs are being fixed 05 Electricity sub-sector Regulatory Body (ORSE) Consulted on sector policy decisions Consulted on regulation projects and ensures compliance with the technical regulatory provisions Controls the application of bidding agreements by operators. Awards a non-objection notice on issuance of concessions and authorizations to operators. Assesses the tariff structure and levels. Participates in defining the mode of payment of the farmer. Ensures the preservation of the economic and financial viability of the sector 06 Rural Electricity Development Fund Defines the rural electrification strategic plan in the sector policy Supports state in the planning, development and implementation of rural electrification projects 07 Public Power Service Operators and Assignees SONABEL Manage the operations of the rural electrification component Operates the electric power network Defines the strategic plan of energy sector policy Develops power infrastructures within the framework of investment plans. Formulates, negotiates and signs energy exchange agreements
08
68
CIGRE WG C1.9
Socit Nationale dElectricit du Burkina Faso, known as SONABEL, is the sole electricity supply utility. SONABELs generation facilities are almost exclusively thermal and are located in the capital Ouagadougou and several other urban areas. Overall generation capacity in Burkina Faso is believed to be 78 MW, with 70% of this supplied by thermal power stations. There is no national transmission network and the distribution network is limited. Only 7% of the country has access to electricity and electricity is expensive. Growing demands for power have prompted Burkina Faso to seek to import electricity from neighbouring Cte dIvoire. A power line connecting the city of Ferkessedougou in northern Cte dIvoire with Ouagadougou, began operation in 2005. Burkina Faso uses diesel generators to produce electricity, but high production costs prompted the government to begin interconnecting its grid with those of Ghana and Cte dIvoire to import the additional electricity requirements [1]. Transmission SONABELs power system comprises two sub-systems known as regional consumption centres which are interconnected in as shown in Figure 8.2. In addition to these systems, are the Isolated Networks (IN). The power system is organized as follows: The interconnected network of the Regional Centre for Consumption at Ouagadougou (CRCO) consists of Ouaga I, Ouaga II, Koudougou and Kossodo thermal stations, as well as Kompienga and Bagr hydropower stations. This network principally supplies Ouagadougou and its environs, Kompienga and Koudougou. The interconnected network of the Regional Centre for Consumption at Bobo-Dioulasso (CRCB) consisting of Bobo I and Bobo II thermal stations, Tourni and Nioila hydro stations as well as the 225 kV interconnecting line with Cte dIvoire. This network supplies BoboDioulasso and its environs as well as the south-west regions of the country. The so-called Isolated Networks (IN) consist of a set of diesel units supplying the different communities in the country and the two centres of Lo and P receive supplies through connection to the Ghanaian network [2].
69
CIGRE WG C1.9
High Voltage Transmission Network SONABELs High Voltage (HV) Transmission Network comprises of three voltage levels arranged as follows: The 225 kV interconnection line from Ferkssoudougou (Cte dIvoire) to Bobo-Dioulasso (Burkina Faso) covering a length of 225 km, with an extension to Ouagadougou planned for end of 2008. The 132 kV interconnection lines connecting Bagr and Kompienga hydro power stations to Patte dOie substation in Ouagadougou via Zano substation, 315 km in length. The 90 kV lines linking on the one hand the Koudougou thermal power station to the Patte dOie substation and, on the other hand, Ouaga I&II and Kossodo thermal power stations to Zagtouli substation. The 90 kV network covers a total length of 126 km, of which 97.5 km (Koudougou Zagtouli Patte dOie) is operated at 33 kV [2].
70
CIGRE WG C1.9 Distribution Network The Medium Voltage (MV) distribution network comprises the following voltage levels: 15 kV, 20 kV and 33 kV. The total length of the MV networks was 1 623 km in 2005, compared with 1 504 km in 2004. The length of the Low Voltage (LV) network was 4 891 km in 2005 and 4 660 km in 2004, i.e. an increase of 231 km. The increase was due to the achievement of 22 745 new connections [2].
8.2
Table 8.2 shows the demand forecast for Burkina Faso to 2020. In recent years, national consumption has increased at an annual rate of slightly more than 7%, which is faster than the GDP growth (elasticity of around 1.5). The national rate of electrification and the town of Ouagadougou alone represents more than 90% of CRCOs consumption. The residential sector largely dominates, followed by the tertiary sector. Peak demand in 2003 was 105.2 MW, which is forecast to reach 282 MW by 2020 (average 6.3% growth per year) [3].
Table 8.2: Demand Forecast for Peak Power and Energy for Burkina Faso [3]
2003 2007 2011 Peak Power (MW) CRCO CRCB Total 83 22 105 104 31 135 139 39 178 Energy (GWh) CRCO CRCB Total 338 115 453 480 145 625 646 179 825 810 220 1030 1019 286 1305 175 48 223 220 62 282 2015 2020
The sales realized from 775 medium voltage (MV) customers accounted for 198.468 GWh as against 168.991 GWh in 2004 for 738 customers of the same category, thus representing an increase in sales by 17.4%. The 255 738 low voltage (LV) customers consumed 338.995 GWh in 200 while 305.698 GWh was consumed by 234 122 LV customers in 2004, i.e. an increase in sales by 10.89%, as illustrated in Table 8.3. Table 8.3 presents some information on sales and customer growth. Between 2004 and 2005, the number of SONABELs customers grew by 9.2% and the sales rose by 13.7%. Sales generated from low voltage customers accounted for 63.1% of the total sales while medium voltage customers accounted for 36.9%, i.e. a slight increase by 1.6% compared to the 35.3% generated in 2004. The 71
CIGRE WG C1.9 number of new connections achieved stood at 22 745 in 2005, as against 23 202 in 2004, i.e. a decrease of 1.97% [3].
Table 8.3: Evaluation of SONABEL Power Sales and Number of Customers by Category [2]
2004 Number of customer Low voltage Medium voltage SONABEL 234 122 738 234 860 Sales in GWh 305 698 168 991 472 690 Share (%) 64.7 35.3 100 2005 Number of customers 255 738 755 256 493 Sales in GWh 338 995 198 468 537 463 Share (%) 63.1 36.9 100 Evaluation Customer Increase 9.22% 2.30% 9.21% Sales Increase 10.89% 18.85% 13.70%
8.3
The Burkina Faso electricity supply network consists of two sub-systems, which were planned to be inter-connected by 2005 [1]. These were: The Regional Centre for Consumption at Bobo-Dioulasso (CRCB), which, in addition to the countrys second city, includes other population centres in the southwest, including Banfora. Until August 2000, this system was supplied by diesel generators, supplemented by two small hydro power stations at Niofila and Tournir. Since August 2000, the CRCB has been connected to the Cte dIvoire grid through a 225 kV line between Bobo and Ferkessedoughou. The Regional Centre for Consumption at Ouagadougou (CRCO) which includes the capital, Ouagadougou and other cities such as Koudougou (third largest city in the country), Ziniare and Tenkodogo. The CRCO receives its power from four thermal power stations. These are the three power stations of Ouagadougou (Ouga 1, Ouga 2 and Kossodo), which total approximately 80 MW installed capacity for an estimated usable power of 67 MW at best, and Koudougou power station with an installed capacity of 5.7 MW. This system is also fed by two hydropower stations, at Kompienya and Bagre, situated in the south east of the country. The latter two have a guaranteed output of 18 MW, approximately one-third of the power consumed by CRCO [3]. As a general rule, the quality of service of SONABEL transmission and distribution network deteriorated in 2005 as against 2004, which again was better than 2003. This decline is attributable to the rise in inadvertent disruptions, service incidents or load shedding that increased from 1 411 points in 2004 to 1 482 points in 2005, i.e. a 5.03% rise for both systems (CRCO and CRCB). The mean outage time (MOT) remained constant at 38.4 minutes for CRCO between 2004 and 2005.
72
CIGRE WG C1.9 Conversely, it dropped for CRCB from 36.1 minutes in 2004 to 32.3 minutes in 2005, i.e. an improvement of about 4 minutes. Un-served energy for its part, increased sharply within the sub-systems. For CRCO, it rose from 1.6 GWh in 2004 to 2.454 GWh in 2005. It was mainly due to insufficiency in generation capacity caused by the delay in the commissioning of new capacity at the Kossodo plant. For CRCB, the un-served energy increased from 0.212 GWh in 2004 to 0.427 GWh in 2005, i.e. a rise of 101%. One of the causes of this deterioration was the three-week unavailability of the Cte dIvoire interconnection line. The losses recorded on SONABELs distribution network were in the order of 12.61% in 2005 compared with 13.53% in 2004. This slight improvement in performance was due to the loss reduction oriented policy initiated by SONABEL, notably the war against fraud which is essentially responsible for the losses incurred. Though the global losses decreased slightly in 2005 vis--vis 2004, they are still very high, requiring on-going strong measures to support the trend [2]. The findings of the report for Project de renforcement des capacities de planification de la SONABLE par letude du schema directeur du systeme regional dapprovisionment en electricite de Ouagadougou identified the following problems encountered in both the structure and the working of CRCO distribution systems [3]: Overloading of certain distribution transformers. Overloading of certain 15 kV outgoing lines. Unacceptable voltage drop on 15 kV connections. Lack of selectivity and problems of protection.
8.4
Ouagadougou Master Plan prepared by the group of consultants Dansk Energy ManagementTractebel-CRC SOGEMA suggested the following projects [3]: The 225 kV Bobo Dioulasso-Ouagadougou line in Burkina Faso to supply power from Cte dIvoire to Ouagadougou via a new 225 kV single circuit line. The project was completed in 2006. A 225 kV connection to the Ghana grid, ending at the Patte dOie substation, to be commissioned in 2011, supplying contractual power limited to 20 MW. Installation of combined cycle thermal generation units between 2012 and 2020 with a total capacity of 150 MW, supplemented at the end of the period by a 30 MW gas turbine for use at peak periods. Auaga 3 diesel generator power station, which would constitute the first independent electricity 73
CIGRE WG C1.9 production unit in Burkina Faso, made possible by the liberalization of the electricity industry. The project consists of three diesel generator units of 3 x 10 MW supplied with fuel oil, possibly followed by a second phase of 2 x 10 MW units.
8.5
The need to extend power supply to several urban and rural localities, at the same time improving the reliability and quality of the overall service. In terms of reliance, Burkina Faso is highly dependent on imported hydrocarbons due to the fact that it neither produces nor exports oil. Daily consumption is increasing. Figures indicate that from 8 000 barrels/day in 2000 to an increased 8 300 barrels/day in 2008. Growing demands for power have prompted Burkina Faso to seek importation of electricity from the neighbouring Ivory Coast and Ghana. In terms of the extended network, the national electricity access rate of 17% in 2008 is low. It is only 4% in rural areas, owing to the limited transport and distribution networks in those areas. Currently, 1 000 km of 33 kV lines, and another 400 km of low voltage lines have been refurbished in the country, through the involvement of the African Development Bank. [4] With regard to Burkino Fasos capacity concerns, the current level of imports is a worrying factor on national consumption. For example, in 2006, hydrocarbon imports totalled 340 500 tonnes, which is 1.04 times national consumption. The imports, representing 10 to 20% of all of the countrys gross imports over the past 10 years, are increasing rapidly in the face of mounting demand to meet socioeconomic needs. [4] The average production cost per kWh for 2008 was about 0.32 per kWh (US Dollar). Electricity demand has been growing at a rate of 4.4% annually since 2003, when the final consumption was 35 kWh per inhabitant. The analysis of energy supply and demand balances for Burkina Faso indicates that the systems peak demand will reach 426 MW in 2020 from 131 MW in 2009. In terms of renewable energy, the western location of Burkina Faso limits the potential for wind power. The average wind speed ranges between 1 and 3 m/s, with the maximum only to be obtained in the North. However, small-scale generators at suitable sites and for selective purposes (e.g. water pumping, desalination systems, etc.) may be feasible. [4] Traditional biomass fuels are used for meeting household energy needs but the potential for efficiency in the residential sector has been identified. The introduction of energy-efficient stoves has proven a
74
CIGRE WG C1.9 winner in reducing biomass demand, a project run by German Technical Assistance (GTZ) and Foyers Amliors au Burkina Faso (FAFASO). Energy efficiency projects have been run in the beer brewing sector, financed by the Global Environmental Facility (GEF). [4]
8.6
Financing Issues
SONABEL is the main integrated operator, with a national monopoly on the generation and distribution of electricity in the countrys urban centres. SONABEL is a public utility for which the state provides the majority of operating capital. In March 2010, the government announced that the previously proposed privatization of SONABEL was to be scrapped, due to the belief within the government that a privately managed, performance-contracted organization is more effective than full privatization. The limited fossil energy sources available in Burkina Faso are not utilized commercially. Energy is provided by fuelwood (main source), proceeded by hydrocarbons, hydroelectricity and renewables, solar being the most commonly used. The constraints on the utilization of hydropower have led the country to set up thermal power generation plants with high production costs to meet a fast growing demand. [4] Burkina Faso are currently benefiting from the results of a new and improved energy infrastructure. They received a $38 million loan from the African Development Bank (AfDB) to improve access to electricity for nearly 800 000 people. The AfDB loan will fund the Electricity Infrastructure Strengthening and Rural Electrification Project. The AfDB acknowledged that demand for electricity in the country is growing at a fast rate annually and at the same time struggling to develop new energy sources. With the help of the AfDB and an agreement known as the West African Power Pool, the countrys electrical grid will be connected to the grids of its neighbours Ghana and Cte dIvoire. Those two countries, which border the sea and have easier access to sources of electricity, will be the main conduits for the increased supply of power in Burkina Faso. Once the project is completed, access to electricity should become much more consistent for the population. Currently, the Burkinabe people find energy from a varied supply of sources, many of which are more expensive than electric provided on a grid system. Increased energy provisions will also help the government make progress in achieving globally recognized development needs, including access to water and health care. AfDB claims that once the Burkina Faso grid is connected, economic activity will increase and encourage more business development. [6]
8.7
Human Resources
SONABEL is doing its own generation, transmission and distribution planning. However, external consultants do carry out some work affecting the network expansion. The following are examples of
75
CIGRE WG C1.9 work carried out by external consultants. Nexant for planning studies for the use of USAID and ECOWAS [3]. The purpose of the Regional Transmission Study evaluates the new cross-border transmission projects that are proposed for the West Africa interconnected power system over the 2004 to 2020 planning horizon. This is for the benefit of ECOWAS member countries, USAID, lenders and other donors [3]. The report which was prepared in 2000 by the group of consultants Dansk Energy Management-Tractebel-CRC SOGEMA with the title: Project de renforcement des capacities de planification de la SONABLE par letude du schema directeur du systeme regional dapprovisionment en electricite de Ouagadougou. The purpose of the studies was to enhance the planned capacity of SONABEL to supply Ouagadougou with electricity [3]. Another report, titled: Rapport Final Volume 4 Comparaison des alternatives (SOGREAH, June 2002), studies the optimal generation and transmission investments to meet the demand at least cost and under acceptable conditions of supply reliability and quality. The purpose of this study was to provide an economic comparison of the various alternatives put forward and defined in the previous studies. The studies were performed by consultants Dansk Energy Management-Tractebel-CRC SOGEMA [3].
8.8
References
1. http://www.mbendi.com/indy/powr/af/bf/p0005.htm 2. http://www.ecowapp.org/WAPP%20PDFS/KPI-ENG.pdf 3. West Africa Regional Transmission Study. Volume 2: Master Plan 4. http://www.reeep.org/index.php?id=9353&special=viewitem&cid=122 5. http://www.state.gov/r/pa/ei/bgn/2834.htm 6. http://allafrica.com/stories/201002120900.html
76
CIGRE WG C1.9
9.
9.1
Burundi
Electricity Industry Structure
Burundi is small landlocked country in the Great Lakes region of eastern central Africa, sharing borders with Rwanda 290 km, Tanzania 451 km and Democratic Republic of Congo (DRC) 233 km. Burundis population was in the order of 7 000 000 in 2002. There are two organizations involved in the generation and supply of electricity in Burundi: Socit Internationale des Pays des Grands Lacs (Sinelac), was established by Burundi, Rwanda and Democratic Republic of Congo, to develop international electricity projects. Rgi de Production et Distribution dEau et dElectricit (Regideso), is a state-owned vertically integrated utility. REGIDESO operates Burundis thermal power stations located in Bujumbura and the surrounding areas, and a small amount of hydro capacity in rural areas. It also operates the transmission system and the distribution network in Burundi, purchasing electricity from the Sinelac site at Rusizi via a 110 kV transmission line operated by Democratic Republic of Congo. The Ministre de lnergie et des Mines exerts main regulatory powers over the power and water sectors. Direction Gnrale de lHydraulique et des nergies Rurales (DGHER) is mandated to carry out water supply and electrification projects in rural areas. Between 50% and 60% of the electricity consumed comes from the Ruzizi I and II power stations, which belong jointly to Burundi, Rwanda and Democratic Republic of Congo.
9.2
Burundi employs the following load forecast methodologies: Historical trend. Rural target. Electrification target. Top-down approach.
77
CIGRE WG C1.9 When forecasting the electricity demand of Burundi in terms of economic indicators and population (i.e. combinations of variables such as the sectoral GDP and/or population), it was found that the variables that should be retained in order to have most reasonable and consistent results are the GDP of the primary and tertiary sectors, and the population.
Table 9.1: GDP Growth Rate (2002~2020) in Burundi
The other elements affecting the load forecast are the removal of constraints on demand, the inclusion of an allowance for rural electrification and the reduction of technical losses. The forecasted GDP growth rates are shown in Table 9.1 The assumptions used for in load forecasting, as well as the load factor, are illustrated in Table 9.2.
Table 9.2: Assumptions Made for Load Forecast Preparation in Burundi
The forecast energy and peak demand requirements for Burundi are illustrated in Figure 9.1 and Figure 9.2 respectively. The energy requirements are at the energy sent out level which includes sales and losses. Auxiliary consumption at the power plants is not included and would need to be added if gross production were required. The demand figure is the maximum demand on the system (corresponding 78
CIGRE WG C1.9 to sales plus losses) as well as an allowance for a reserve margin of 20%.
Figure 9.1: Peak Power Demand in Burundi Source SSEA II Regional Power Needs Assessment report
Figure 9.2: Energy Demand in Burundi Source SSEA II Regional Power Needs Assessment report
79
CIGRE WG C1.9
9.3
Burundis power production rose to 127.1 GWh in 2002 from 114.1 GWh in 2001. Most power was generated from hydroelectric sources. In 2002 the consumption of electricity fell to 117.3 GWh from 122.2 GWh in 2001. Industrial consumption rose to 49.9 GWh from 42.1 GWh. Burundi maintains a reserve margin of 15%.
9.4
Multi-Sectoral Water and Electricity Infrastructure Project (20082013) The project is funded by The World Bank at a cost of $50 million. It supports the Government of Burundis efforts to: 1. increase access to water supply services in peri-urban areas of Bujumbura 2. increase the reliability and quality of electricity services [1] Interconnection of Electric Grids of Nile Equatorial Lakes Countries The project consists of the construction and upgrading of 769 km of 220 kV and 110 kV power lines and 17 transformer stations to interconnect the electric grids of the Nile Basin Initiative Member countries (NBI), namely Burundi, DR Congo, Egypt, Ethiopia, Kenya, Rwanda, Sudan, Tanzania and Uganda. [1] OtherProjects Feasibility is a major factor and would cost around 750 million dollars. When the resources are available the following projects can commence. These include: Kabu 16 (20 MW) and Mpanda (10.4 MW) and two regional projects : Rusizi III (145 MW to be divided with Rwanda and the DRC) and Rusumo Falls (61 MW to be divided with Rwanda and Tanzania) are two further hydro-electric projects. Burundi also plans another national project: Jiji/Mulembwe/Siguvyaye in the south of Burundi rated for 100 MW or more, and on Ruvubu (Mumwendo site: 80 MW). [1]
9.5
Burundis Poverty Reduction Strategy (2006) identifies the severe shortfall in electricity supply as a major constraint for development. It recognizes the need to undertake urgent actions (including the rehabilitation of existing power plants and the construction of new facilities) to ensure an adequate
80
CIGRE WG C1.9 power supply, and endorses the governments plan to undertake a rural electrification programme by extending the grid and connecting villages, as well as disseminating information on alternative energy sources which are affordable for low-income households. Moreover, to promote solar energy use and to reduce the high cost of acquiring solar equipment, the government plans the reduction or the suppression of the taxes which are applied to photovoltaic panels. Nevertheless, solar systems have undergone a certain expansion due to diverse NGO initiatives to cover especially deprived sectors. For example, since 2006, more than 95 community organizations (centres of health, communal colleges and social centres) have been outfitted with solar photovoltaic installations. [1] Solar Average solar insolation stands at 45 kWh/m2/day. Solar energy is being investigated and utilized as a means of off-grid electrification for rural areas. Institutions such as the Solar Electric Light Fund have also invested in small solar systems for public buildings, such as health centres. [1] Wind Data on wind patterns has been recorded by the Institute for Agronomic Sciences of Burundi (ISABU), primarily for agricultural purposes, give a mean wind speed between 4 and 6 m/s. More potential sites probably exist in the higher elevations. Pilot private-sector schemes are currently operational. Biomass Biogas is a form of energy adapted well to the needs for Burundi. The current government plan is to produce energy by means of digesters. Fuel-wood accounts for the vast majority of Burundis energy consumption. However, potential wood consumption in the country is forecast to require production of 180 000 hectares, which surpasses the current forest coverage of 174 000 hectares, suggesting the need for reduction of consumption and re-forestation programmes. Geothermal Resources have been identified, but there is little available data to assess commercial viability, the last geothermal study of the region having been conducted in 1968. Hydropower Burundis theoretical hydropower capacity is 1 700 MW, however, roughly 300 MW is seen as economically viable, and only 32 MW has been exploited. [1]
81
CIGRE WG C1.9
9.6
Financing Issues
Financing renewable energy requires major contributions, thus the country will inevitably struggle to fund projects. [1] The Burundian state promulgated, in August 2000, a law detailing the liberalization and regulation of the public utility of drinking water and electric power, allowing the private sector to contribute to the development of these sectors through Private Public Partnership (PPP). [1] The state-owned company Regie de Production et de Distribution dEau et dElectrcite (REGIDESO) (the Water and Electricity Production and Distribution Authority) is in charge of production, transmission and distribution in urban areas. It is a public utility company, placed under the supervision of the Ministry of Energy and Mines. RIGIDESO mainly runs hydropower plants of high capacity.[1] Electricity is transmitted and distributed by REGIDESO, whilst the Socit Internationale des Pays des Grand Lacs (SINELAC), another state owned company responsible for development of indigenous and joint power ventures with neighbouring countries, generates and sells power to REGIDESCO. [1]
9.7
Human Resources
The Burundian Centre for Studies of Alternative Energies was created in 1982 to conduct applied research and disseminate knowledge of renewable energies, particularly solar, wind and biomass. The Government and Ministry of Energy and Mines have formulated certain energy policies. The responsibilities include: to plan, control and coordinate all programmes and activities of the energy sector; to promote exploration and exploitation of hydrocarbons while protecting the environment; to enhance access to modern energy services at least cost; and to elaborate laws and regulations for the best management of the sector
9.8
References
1. http://www.reeep.org/index.php?id=9353&text=policy&special=viewitem&cid=58
82
CIGRE WG C1.9
10.
Cameroon
83
CIGRE WG C1.9
84
CIGRE WG C1.9
Electricity Consumption (GWh) 1452 2274 2731 2844 3378 3509 3304
Cameroon depends on hydropower for 95% of its energy supply. Only 5% of the countrys rural population and 65% of urban dwellers currently have access to electricity. Demand for electricity continues to grow at a rate of 8% per annum, and although the countrys sole power utility, AES Sonel, has increased energy output over the last five years, this continues to fall short of actual demand.
* AES-Sonel uses about forty generating units with a total installed capacity of 82 MW across the national territory. The generating units are at present essentially used as back up plants in the Northern region.
Altogether there is 8 245 km of transmission network, including 2 365 km of HV network and 5 880 km of LV and MV network. The primary transmission in Cameroon is via 225 kV, 110 kV and 90 kV high voltage lines. The 225 kV network stretches for over 480 km in the south of the country. The 110 kV network is situated in the north of the country and covers 337 km, of which 237 km are operated temporarily as 90 kV. The 90 kV network has a total length of 1 547 km, which is split between the south (1346 km) and the north (201 km). The low and medium voltage network supplies households and businesses. The total length of this network is 5 880 km. The interconnection of the network comprises 33 HV/MV transformer substations (30 in the south, 3 in the north) and 4 740 MV/LV substations. The AES-Sonel distribution network is broken down into four electrical regions, namely: 85
CIGRE WG C1.9 Littoral. Centre. West. North. On the southern interconnected grid, which comprises the first three electrical regions, 13 MV/HV substations supply the distribution network. With regard to the northern grid, 4 substations play the same role. About 30 isolated thermal power plants supply isolated areas with electricity. Cameroon has a large hydro potential, only partially exploited. A possible total hydro capacity of 115 000 MW has been identified (World Resources Institute, 1996), but the installed hydro capacity was only 719 MW in 1998. This potential is one of the most significant in African countries. AES-Sonel and Frances lectricit de France (EDF) have conducted studies concerning a Chad Cameroon interconnector project. AES-Sonel expects to add approximately 50 000 new electricity connections each year over the next 15 years. The company also plans to upgrade its existing transmission, distribution and generation facilities.
86
CIGRE WG C1.9
87
CIGRE WG C1.9
10.7 References
http://www.indexmundi.com/g/g.aspx?v=79&c=cm&l=en http://www.indexmundi.com/g/g.aspx?v=81&c=cm&l=en https://www.cia.gov/library/publications/the-world-factbook/geos/cm.html#top
88
CIGRE WG C1.9
11.
Cape Verde
Cape Verde has no indigenous sources of oil, natural gas, hydropower and coal. Total installed electricity capacity(2010) was 116MW, 72% of which is derived from diesel fuel, 22% from wind and 6 % is from solar energy. All petroleum products including gasoline, jet fuel and kerosene have to be imported. The energy balance of Cape Verde shows a high dependency on imported fossil fuels (11% of total imports in 2009, costing US$ 78 million). Indigenous energy resources consist essentially of biomass, as wind energy production is limited. Renewables in total contributed 2.7% to primary energy in 2009, with the remainder being met by imported fuels. There are no petroleum refineries on the islands, only storage facilities. Energy usage by the different sectors are showen below.
Figure 11.1: Energy usage sectors (Source: GESTO 2011 and ELECTRA data)
89
CIGRE WG C1.9 The electrification rate is 76%. The government has set a target of boosting this ratio to 90% over the next few years. It also plans to generate 50% of electricity from renewable sources by 2020. In 2009, construction began on 5 wind farms which are expected to be finished this year. In March 2010, the government secured funding of 26 mn from the British government for the construction of 40 wind turbines capable of generating 40 MW of electricity. The Dutch government is also providing financing for a wind-power project. In January, 2010, Martifer Solar of Portugal signed a contract with the Ministry of Economic, Growth and Competitiveness to build 2 photovoltaic solar energy facilities with a total capacity of 7.5 MW. They will produce 4% of the electricity output and are expected to be completed by August. The largest thereof was the Cabeolica wind farm project.
GWh
90
CIGRE WG C1.9
GWh
Figure 11.3: Electricity production 2000-2011
Extract from http://www.estandardsforum.org Cape Verde has few natural resources, a limited water supply and is a net food importer. The economy is dominated by the services sector with commerce, transport, tourism, and public services accounting for about three-fourths of GDP. There is a large trade deficit that is partially offset by foreign assistance and worker remittances. Cape Verde managed to weather the global financial crisis and is primed for an acceleration in economic growth as tourist receipts rebound and foreign direct investment inflows rise in response to the government measures to encourage the development of casinos, hotels and resorts. The government is also hoping to attract European investors to purchase property for second and vacation homes
91
CIGRE WG C1.9
.
Figure 11.4: Cape Verde map
The Cabeolica wind farm project was awarded the 2011 Best Renewable Project in Africa at the Africa Energy Awards held in Johannesburg on 31st March, 2011. The Cape Verde based project was singled out for being the first commercial scale Public Private Partnership (PPP) wind farm in Sub-Saharan Africa. The Cabeolica 28MW wind farm was developed by InfraCo Africa as a public-private partnership with the government of Cape Verde and the national power utility.
92
CIGRE WG C1.9
CIGRE WG C1.9
94
CIGRE WG C1.9
Wind energy According a study carried out by Helimax, Cape Verde is one of the 15 countries with the best wind resource in Africa. The plentiful wind resource is confirmed by monitoring by the World Bank - an average wind velocity of 7.5 m/s. At the end of 2004, there were 3 wind parks: in S. Vincent with an installed capacity of 900 kWh, in Sal with 600 kWh, and in Santiago with 900 kWh, delivering 2.9% of the electrical energy of the country. Recent developments have been made to the sector through collaboration between the Africa Finance Corporation, the Finnish Fund for Industrial Cooperation and Infraco, a consortium for African infrastructure development, in the Cabelica project, operated by Cabelica S.A. The project consists of a total of 30 turbines, with 11 installed as of November 2011, for a combined final output of 25.5 MW. Cabelica S.A. will sell all power generated to ELECTRA under a PPA. Wind Potential
The context seems favourable for wind energy to be competitive. There is also an interest in small scale wind projects for small electrical grids in remote locations. Cape Verde is more favourable to small and medium scale projects mainly because of the characteristics of the demand of electricity and the electrical grid. However, the development of wind energy could be hampered because of 95
CIGRE WG C1.9 restrictions on investment, and the need for further capacity building. Wind was also very popular in the past for water pumping purposes. Hydropower There is almost no (economically feasible) potential for hydropower in the islands, predominantly due to the limited water resources in the country. Wave power has been considered for the island nation, with a Gesto study in 2011 indicating a potential of roughly 17 kW/m in some areas, mostly around the islands of Sal and Santo Anto.
96
CIGRE WG C1.9
11.5
The national electricity grid is made of many non-interconnected grids. The small extension of each network makes electricity generation more expensive, lowering efficiency and limiting the possibility of balancing the power. Furthermore in Cape Verde the great number of power stations and the presence in most islands of more than one network decreases the general efficiency of the system. The electricity demands on each of the larger islands are typically in the range 10-20 MW. The electricity demands have been constantly growing during recent years, and dramatic growth is expected in the coming years, mainly due to planned developments of tourism on four of the islands Santiago, So Vicente, Sal and Boa Vista. A single power price is applied across all the islands despite cost differences, on the grounds of social equity. In addition, the performance of ELECTRA as a utility has previously been limited, with transmission and distribution losses reaching 26% in 2009, and a traditionally low rate of cost recovery (71% in 2006). In addition, power outages are common across the country, with approximately 1,337 hours without power service in the country in 2010.
To improve this situation in more recent years, ELECTRA has gradually switched off the oldest and smallest power stations and has invested in electricity distribution infrastructures, in order to rationalise consumption of fuels and production of electricity, and lower the costs involved. The country, as of 2008, had one of the highest electricity tariff rates in Africa, with an average rate of US$ 25 cents per kWh. The energy utility Empresa de Electricidad e Agua (ELECTRA, www.electra.cv) was first incorporated in 1998 (law no. 86/98), and, by the end of 1999, the state had sold 51% of its stocks for 45.5 million to a Portuguese consortium under Portuguese government control. The state and municipalities continued to hold 34% and 15%, respectively. The consortium committed to investing 65 million, obtaining a 50-year concession. ELECTRA invested considerably at the beginning of their mandate, but problems began to arise in relation to tariffs. At the end of 2001, the management complained that the tariffs did not cover the rise in fuel costs.
97
CIGRE WG C1.9
11.6
Financing Issues
Funded by the European Investment Bank and the African Development Bank at a cost of 60 million, the project comprises of the development, construction and operation of four onshore wind farms, including all interconnections from the wind farms to the local 20 kV grid connection points, and associated transmission infrastructure on the islands of Santiago (9.65 MW), Boa Vista (4.25 MW), Sal (7.65 MW) and Sao Vicente (5.95 MW) in Cape Verde. The wind farms will have a total installed capacity of 27.2 MW. Construction initially began in winter 2011, and construction is hoped to be complete by mid-2012. As is the case in many other sub-Saharan African nations, China has been an active investor. The Chinese government has provided financing for the construction of the national parliament building, a stadium and two dams. Along with private Chinese investors, the Chinese government has also been involved in funding projects in housing, energy, cement production and the restoration of Cabnave shipyards. The Cabeolica 28MW wind farm was developed by InfraCo Africa as a public-private partnership with the government of Cape Verde and the national power utility. The US90 million project was financed with equity from InfraCo Africa, Finnfund and the African Finance Corporation, and debt financing provided by the European Investment Bank and the African Development Bank.
98
CIGRE WG C1.9
12.
The Central African Republic (CAR) is a landlocked country in central Africa with a tropical climate. It borders Cameroon, Chad, the Republic of the Congo, Sudan and the Democratic Republic of the Congo (DRC). The population is 4 511 488 and the population density is 7.2 people per sq. km. Bangui is the capital, commercial center and the largest city. It has a population of 672 000. Arable land accounts for 3.1% of the area of the country, 38.9% of the population lives in urban areas (UN estimate for 2010), 36.5% of the country is covered by forests, 0.15% of the land area is devoted to permanent crops and there are just 20 sq km of irrigated land. CAR is a former French colony and is still influenced by France. CAR has rich unexploited natural resources consisting of diamonds, gold uranium and other minerals. Diamonds are responsible for 4055% of the national export revenue.
CIGRE WG C1.9 40 000 kW (about 50% hydroelectric in 2001. CAR imports all fossil fuels from neighbouring countries. All plants are run by the state owned utility nergie Centrafricaine ENERCA. ENERCA is currently suffering from large financial setbacks due to the low collection on bills outstanding. Energie Centrafricaine (ENERCA) is the state owned monopoly provider, transmitter and distributor of electricity. Only 7.8% of households have access to electricity. There is a chronic shortage of electricity. The electrical infrastructure is outdated and decrepit. There are 2 main hydroelectric power stations (Boali1 and Boali 2) that provide the bulk of the electricity and a hydroelectric power dam (Boali 3). There is also a diesel power plant in Bangui, two transmission lines that connect Boali 1 and Boali 2 to Bangui and a distribution grid system that needs upgrading. Boali 1 has an installed capacity of 8.75 megawatts (MW) but it can only produce a maximum of 5 MW because of problems related to procuring parts. The hydroelectric power dam (Boali 3) is not yet operational. The diesel power plant in Bangui has six generators but five are not working. The two transmission lines that connect Boali 1 and Boali 2 to Bangui are also connected to the thermal power plant in Bangui. Theft of parts and the obsolescence of the transmission lines have reduced their capacity to provide Bagui with electricity. The distribution grid is outdated and causes losses of 45% to 50% of the electricity transmitted. In July 2008, the electricity shortage turned into a severe crisis when the Boali 1 and Boali 2 hydroelectric power stations that supply power to the city of Bangui and its surrounding areas broke down simultaneously. In response, the government adopted a programme to modernize them, upgrade the distribution grid and restructure and improve the management of ENERCA. Agence Franaise de Dveloppement (AFD) and the World Bank are providing financing to modernize Boali 1 and 2 and the distribution grid [5].
CIGRE WG C1.9 developing themselves also have large untapped hydro resources.
101
CIGRE WG C1.9
12.7 References
1. www.energyrecipes.org 2. www.reep.com. 3. www.un.org/esa/population/publications/wpp2008/wpp2008_text_tables.pdf. 4. Sector profile; Central African Republic Bernard Krief Consultants 5. www.estandardsforum.org
102
CIGRE WG C1.9
13.
Chad
Chad is a landlocked country in the heart of Africa due to its dry arid conditions it is sometimes referred to as the dead heart of Africa. Chad is bordered by Libya to the north, Sudan to the east, Central African Republic to the south, Cameroon and Nigeria to the south west and Niger to the west. Chad is majorly influenced by France as they maintain approximately 1000 troops in the region to help the government fight off the various rebel groups. Chads main export is crude oil and also has the second largest wetland system in Africa. Before oil cotton was Chads main export and still accounts for a large portion of their export revenue. Chad has proven oil reserves in the doba basin. Doba basins three oil fields (Bolobo Kome and Mendon) were
103
CIGRE WG C1.9 estimated at 900 million barrels. The underdeveloped state of the countrys electricity grid greatly hinders the countrys oil based economic growth.
GWh
Figure 13.2: Chad electricity production from 2000-2011
GWh
Figure 13.3: Chad electricityconsumption from 2000-2011
Generation and distribution of electricity in Chad is handled by the state run Socit Tchahienne dEau et dElectricit (STEE). Frances Veolia who manages STEE , is expected to purchase a majority share 104
CIGRE WG C1.9 when the company is privatized in accordance with World Bank Reforms. The oil sector dominates the economy and is the largest source of government and export receipts. The electrification rate is only about 2%. There are frequent power shortages and outages [5]. There are no indigenous sources of coal, natural gas or hydropower. All of Chads electricity is generated by oil or diesel. The state operated Chadian Water and Electric Power Company is the producer, distributor and transmitter of electricity. About 2% of the population has access to electricity. Only 9% of households in the capital have electricity. There are frequent power shortages and outages. Both Libya and France have provided generators to boost the inadequate supply of electricity. The electricity sector was lifted by the activation of the 21 MW Farcha power station in 2008. Previously, there was just one major power plant that produced 22 MW. Wood is the major provider of energy. This has resulted in deforestation [5].
105
CIGRE WG C1.9
13.7 References
1. www.energyrecipies.org 2. http://www.reeep.org 3. www.mbendi.co.za 4. CAPP session 3 overview 5. www.estandardsforum.org
106
CIGRE WG C1.9
14.
Comoros
107
CIGRE WG C1.9
Definition: This entry consists of total electricity generated annually plus imports and minus exports, expressed in kilowatt-hours. The discrepancy between the amount of electricity generated and/or imported and the amount consumed and/or exported is accounted for as loss in transmission and distribution.
CIGRE WG C1.9 and Anjouan. Gafo, on the other hand contributes with its expertise in geothermal development, and will run the possible geothermal power generation if potentials are as expected. Gafo Energy already is a developer of geothermal power generation along East Africa's Great Rift Valley and nearby volcanic islands. In late 2009, the government of Comoros granted Gafo exclusive rights for Comoros geothermal projects, according to a press release by the New Zealand company. The islands of the Comoros archipelago were formed by volcanic activity. On Grand Comore, where the capital and largest city Moroni lies, the most outstanding feature is Mount Karthala, the country's highest point and one of the most active volcanoes in the world. Also Anjouan and Moheli islands have volcanic activity. But none of this potential energy is currently used. Zoubert Al Ahdal, Comoran Ambassador in Abu Dhabi, therefore said he was "delighted" by the significant investment in Comoros to "help displace the dependency on diesel-powered energy." The potential to generate energy from a local source would "benefit the people of Comoros and the environment," Mr Ahdal added. World-wide, geothermal energy remains a small source of renewable energy, but in countries where conditions are good, it can be a major source. Iceland, a volcanic island in the North Atlantic, has managed to produce almost all of its energy needs from geothermal sources, to such an extent that energy on the island is cheap enough to attract international energy demanding industries.
109
CIGRE WG C1.9 Source: CIA World Factbook unless otherwise noted, information in this page is accurate as of 18 December 2008.
14.4 References
1. www.estandardsforum.org 2. CIA World Factbook 3. http://www.nationmaster.com/country/cn-comoros/ene-energy 4. Afrol News - http://www.afrol.com/articles/36254
110
CIGRE WG C1.9
15.
Congo
111
CIGRE WG C1.9 Privatization Prior to the 1997 civil war, SNE was one of the government entities considered for privatization. This is now not likely to occur in the immediate future due to the damage inflicted upon SNEs infrastructure during the war. Electricite de France (EdF) has shown interest in SNE in the past and has offered aid in the refurbishment of Brazzavilles infrastructure.
112
CIGRE WG C1.9 The Djou hydroelectric station was refurbished in the late 1990s by Rotek, the engineering subsidiary of South African company, Eskom Enterprises. The Congo government and Czech company, Geo-Industia, signed a US$11.2 million agreement to complete feasibility studies for four small hydroelectric plants in northern Congo. In 2003, construction began on the Imboulou hydroelectric dam on the Lefini River. Two Chinese companies, CMEC and CIEMCO are cooperating with the Congo government on the $280 million project. The 120-MW plant should increase Congo's electrical capacity to 234 MW. Construction of the facility is expected to take 5 - 6 years. Development of the $925 million, 1-gigawatt (GW) Sounda Gorge hydroelectric project has been postponed. Sounda Gorge, at the confluence of the Niari and Kouilou Rivers, is located approximately 85 miles north of Pointe Noire. Before independence, the French built access roads, a cementprocessing factory and a deviation tunnel at Sounda Gorge. Following independence, Electricite de France (EdF) unsuccessfully tried to complete the generating facilities. In February 2005 Asssociated Press announced that a South African-led consortium was planning a Congo River project that will nearly double Africa's current electricity output without harming the environment. The project will generate about 40,000 megawatts of electricity and will be activated in phases over a yet-to-be determined period of time. In the first phase, Eskom - together with the power utilities of Angola, Botswana, Congo and Namibia - will rehabilitate and upgrade two dams along the Inga rapids on the Congo river within four to six years and generate about 9,500 megawatts of electricity for 12 southern African countries. At least half of the project's electricity will be produced through a process that diverts river water through electricity-generating turbines before funneling it back into the Congo river. The project which is estimated at US$50 billion (euro37.9 billion) will be funded in part by the respective governments under the New Partnership for African Development, a program adopted by the African Union for the economic development of Africa. [3]
CIGRE WG C1.9 and overstaffing, the government has mortgaged a substantial portion of its oil earnings through oilbacked loans that have contributed to a growing debt burden and chronic revenue shortfalls. Economic reform efforts have been undertaken with the support of international organizations, notably the World Bank and the IMF. However, the reform program came to a halt in June 1997 when civil war erupted. Denis SASSOU-Nguesso, who returned to power when the war ended in October 1997, publicly expressed interest in moving forward on economic reforms and privatization and in renewing cooperation with international financial institutions. Economic progress was badly hurt by slumping oil prices and the resumption of armed conflict in December 1998, which worsened the republic's budget deficit. The current administration presides over an uneasy internal peace and faces difficult economic challenges of stimulating recovery and reducing poverty. The drop in oil prices during the global crisis reduced oil revenue by about 30%, but the subsequent recovery of oil prices has boosted the economy''s GDP and near-term prospects. In March 2006, the World Bank and the International Monetary Fund (IMF) approved Heavily Indebted Poor Countries (HIPC) treatment for Congo, which received $1.9 billion in debt relief under the program in 2010. [4]
114
CIGRE WG C1.9
16.
Cte dIvoire
According to the General Census of Population and Housing of 1998, the population of Cte d Ivoire was 15 336 672 inhabitants. In 1988 the population was estimated at 10 815 694, which corresponds to a growth rate of 3.3% over the period 19881998. In 2008, the population is estimated to be about 20.8 million. Ivorian legislation in electricity (Act No. 85-583 of 29 July 1985) attributes the monopoly of transmission, distribution, export and import of electric power to the state. The segment of generation is not subject to monopoly. It is in this framework that a concession contract was signed in November 1990 for a period of 15 years, between the state and the Compagnie Ivoirienne dElectricit (CIE), a private operator, to control the activities subject to monopoly over the entire national territory, and to operate the thermal and hydro-electric power plants owned by the state. This contract was renewed in 2005 for a further period of 15 years. CIE replaced the former national utility, Energie Electrique de Cte dIvoire (EECI), which was restricted until 1998 to asset management, project management and auditing of the sector. The state also introduced independent power producers (IPPs), Ciprel in 1994 and Azito Energy in 115
CIGRE WG C1.9 1998. These two thermal power plants, as well as Vridi 1 operated by CIE, use natural gas supplied by three groups of private operators represented by Afren, Foxtrot and CNR. To this end, the state has signed contracts for the sale and purchase of natural gas with these oil and gas operators. In December 1998, after the liquidation of EECI, three new state institutions were created: Socit de Gestion du Patrimoine du secteur de lElectricit (SOGEPE) i.e. the company of assets management of the electric sector, was set up to manage the assets of the state and the financial flows in the sector. Socit dOpration Ivoirienne dElectricit (SOPIE) i.e. the Ivorian company for electricity operations, was establish to monitor energy flows and to ensure long-term planning of the sector. Autorit Nationale de Rgulation du secteur de lElectricit (ANARE) i.e. the national regulatory authority on the electric sector, was formed as a regulator to the sector. All these entities are under the technical authority of the Ministry of Mines and Energy which has within it, the Direction Gnrale de lElectricit. The financial supervision is provided by the Ministry of Economy and Finance as illustrated in Figure 16.2. Although established in 1998, ANARE only became operational in 2000, after the two IPP contracts were negotiated. Since its formation, the Regulator acts as an arbiter between CIE and customers and is in charge of resolving disputes between stakeholders in the sector, including the IPPs. ANARE also advises the state, but it has no tariff setting powers or mandate. ANAREs role remains largely that of an advisor to the Ministry of Mines and Energy. Tariffs are set by the state, primarily via the Ministry of Mines and Energy, taking into account an array of factors such as the financial viability of the utility, debt service obligations and consumer affordability. These different stages of restructuring led to the establishment of the actual institutional framework illustrated in Figure 16.2 below:
116
CIGRE WG C1.9
In Cte dIvoire, the generation capacity comprises a combination of thermal and hydro power plants, representing an installed capacity of 1 210 MW. The installed hydro capacity of 604 MW belongs to the Ivorian state and is operated by CIE. The installed capacity of thermal generation is also 606 MW made up of 100 MW at Vridi 1 plant, which belongs to the state and is operated by CIE, and the two 210 MW and 296 MW plants installed and operated respectively by the independent producers, Ciprel and Azito Energy. Several non-connected diesel units supply power to isolated loads. The national peak load recorded in 2008 was 815 MW; an increase of 7% compared to 2007. Hydro-electric power production is mainly located in the centre of the country, while thermal power production is located in Abidjan, which accounts for close to 64% of the load. In 2008, thermal generation contributed up to 67% of the total production.
117
CIGRE WG C1.9
The geographic layout of the electrical infrastructure is shown in Figure 16.2. Cte dIvoires transmission system is made up of 43 substations and approximately 4 400 km of transmission lines, 42% operated at 225 kV and the balance at 90 kV. For distribution, the system is based on roughly 18 700 km of medium voltage lines (15/33 kV) and 15 500 km of low voltage lines (220/380 V). The synchronous frequency of the network is 50 hertz. The transmission system is interconnected to the national electricity grids of Ghana and Burkina Faso. CIE exports power to Togo, Benin and Burkina Faso, exchanges power with Ghana and supplies power to two border towns in Mali. The penetration rate of electricity in Cte dIvoire (number of electrified localities versus the total number of localities in the country) is now 32% and the number of households with a subscription to electricity compared to the total number of households is less than 25%.
118
CIGRE WG C1.9 The typical daily peak load is around 700 MW between 18:00 and 22:00, and the minimum load is around 450 MW in the early morning. The seasonal variation is limited to 12%, with the peak in AprilMay and the minimum in August. There is evidence that economic growth has always had a significant impact on the rate of growth of energy demand, particularly in developing economies. Indeed, analysis of past trends shows that, as a whole, growth of electricity consumption in Cte dIvoire from 1960 to 1999, has been about two times faster than the growth in gross domestic product (GDP). However, as depicted in Figure 16.3 below, since the year 2000 (beginning of political turmoil in the country) the relationship of electricity consumption versus the GDP growth is difficult to identify.
The last major planning study conducted by the Ivorian electricity sector was done in 2001. This project helped to establish the demand forecast and the master plan for generation and transmission reinforcement for the period 2000 to 2015. Regarding the demand forecast, an analytical forecast (or disaggregated) model was utilized. The study begins with the segmentation of the demand for electricity usage by category and region using technical data (sales, number of subscribers, electricity production, etc.), taking into account demographics and economic data, surveys and existing studies. The evaluation of historical and projected needs by sector and regional direction is also studied in the light of changing socio-economic variables affecting the growth in demand. To do this, an analytical model for forecasting energy demand and consumption by region, is developed for the whole country. For the purpose of planning generation and transmission facilities, energy estimates are then converted into power, taking into account losses and load factors on the network. Finally, sensitivity analyses are conducted to develop alternative high and low scenarios.
119
CIGRE WG C1.9 Figure 16.4 below illustrate the demand forecast obtained in December 2003
Consumption
2002
2004
2006
2008 Year
2010
2012
2014
2016
Figure 16.5: Cte dIvoire Forecasted Annual Maximum Demand and Consumption
The 2001 study predicted a 7% demand growth based on the available economical data. The more recent forecast, however, estimates a lower growth rate of about 3%. The forecast for 2004 is 3 840 GWh, a growth rate of 2.1%. After the current unrest is over, Sopie expects electricity demand growth to resume at 6% per year, which could lead to a 2020 demand of 1 570 MW.
120
CIGRE WG C1.9 Generation studies are done using a simulation model that provides technical and economic optimization and determines the sequence of implementation of the type of generation at least economic cost. Table 16.1 below shows the existing generation capacity for the Cte dIvoire network. CIE operates one thermal plant with an installed capacity of 100 MW and 6 hydro plants with a total installed capacity of 604 MW. Two independent power producers operate two thermal plants with a total installed capacity of 306 MW. The energy production mix is 75:25 thermal: hydro.
Table 16.1: Generation Capacity of the Cte dIvoire Network
Station Vridi TAG 5000(thermal) Azito (IPP) (thermal) Vridi CIPREL(IPP)(thermal) Ayame 1(hydro) Ayame 2(hydro) Kossou(hydro) Taabo(hydro) Buyo(hydro) Fay(hydro) Total Year 1984 1999 1995/97 1959 1965 1972 1979 1980 1984 Installed Capacity (MW) 100 296 210 20 30 174 210 165 5 1 210
121
CIGRE WG C1.9 maintain an acceptable voltage at the 15 kV or 33 kV level, given the on-load tap changers of high and medium voltage transformers that provide for a regulation of 15% and the voltage drop between the primary and secondary windings under full load. In addition, a maximum voltage not exceeding 10% above the rated voltages of 90 kV and 225 kV is considered acceptable and safe for the lines and substations of the national electricity grid. Overload capacity. In considering the most onerous N-l contingency cases, the transmitted power on energized elements should not exceed 100% of the nominal capacity of the elements. This planning criterion which is part of a long-term perspective is conservative, especially in the case of substations where overload is provided in the design. However, it is better suited to the environment of the Ivorian grid, characterized by relatively high ambient temperatures compared to the normal standards applicable to the manufacture of transformers, and longer restoration times in case of failure which are affected by geographic location. These concerns lead to the provision of greater flexibility for operation. Short circuit and dynamic stability. In view of the operating voltage levels of transmission lines and statistics on the number of faults recorded on the transmission system, a permanent threephase fault on an outgoing line of a substation is considered sufficiently likely to check the dynamic stability of the network under this contingency. This contingency is applied under the most critical operating conditions and assuming the prior availability of all the elements of the transmission system. The stability criterion requires that all generators maintain their synchronism and remain in operation after the contingency. Transient stability criterion. The total time of fault clearing for the purposes of applying the stability criterion is set at 150 msec (7.5 cycles) at 90 kV and 120 msec (6 cycles) at 225 kV. These times correspond to durations considered for new protection systems or in the case of replacement of old protection systems on the grid.
122
CIGRE WG C1.9 In 2002, only 26% of the population was connected to electric power. Out of 8 153 villages in the country, only 2 017 had access to electricity. There is large potential for electrification; however the turmoil in the country is suppressing the growth of the network.
123
CIGRE WG C1.9 The administration of these funds is entrusted to a Management Committee. This committee is composed of representatives of the guardianship, CIE, and a representative of civil society. Allocation of various funds: o These funds are provided by a fee based on the kWh sales collected from domestic customers. o The amount of this fee and its allocation are pre-set by decree and revised during the three-year tariff revisions. o Bank financing can be used for part of the investment needs in the short term. The changing role of CIE in managing investments: o Project management is entrusted to CIE for renewal and extension works.
16.8 References
1. http://www.ecb.org.na 2. www.absenergyresearch.com 3. http://www.nampower.com.na
124
CIGRE WG C1.9
17.
125
CIGRE WG C1.9
-5,000
The load forecast for the SNEL West network in Figure 18.3 indicates the potential development of Inga 3 and Grand Inga power stations in the Total Available Generation figures. The corresponding increase in the total demand of the west network, shown in the load forecast in Figure 18.2, includes 126
CIGRE WG C1.9 the power exported internationally, both to the north and to the south of the D.R.C. The balance indicates the expected surplus power. The load forecast for the SNEL south network in Figure 18.3 illustrate the potential power stations in southern part of the D.R.C. The balance indicates the expected surplus or deficit of power. The deficit is made up from power imported from the west network of SNEL via the 500 kV HVDC link.
127
CIGRE WG C1.9
In total, with the grand Inga scheme, a total is a potential of greater than 35 000 MW.
128
CIGRE WG C1.9
129
CIGRE WG C1.9
18.
Djibouti
130
CIGRE WG C1.9
131
CIGRE WG C1.9
132
CIGRE WG C1.9
18.8 References
1. http://www.energyrecipes.org/reports/genericData/Africa/061129%20RECIPES%20countr y%20info%20Djibouti.pdf. 2. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Education_in_Djibouti.
133
CIGRE WG C1.9
19.
Egypt
134
CIGRE WG C1.9 Ensures availability of supply to users at the most equitable prices and considers environmental issues. Considers the interests of customers, producers, transmitters, and distributors. Prepares for fair competition in the field of electricity generation, transmission, and distribution. Prevents any monopoly within the electricity market.
The structure of the targeted electricity market is shown in Figure 19.2. The vision for the Electricity Supply Industry (ESI) is to open the market for bilateral contracts between producers and new customers as well as existing customers in the medium term, and to allow for new entry of independent distribution companies.
135
CIGRE WG C1.9
136
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 19.1 (contd) Statistical Data for Egypt 2008
Yearly generation by type (GWh) 2008 Thermal 108438 Steam Turbines 65732 Gas Turbines 657 Combined Cycle 42049 Diesel Hydro Renewables Others Total Yearly Consumption (GWh Residential Commercial Industrial Others Total Consumption per Capita (kWh) Population supplied (%) Population growth (%) Population 2008 (000) Maximum Load (MW) Growth rate (%) Time Date 2008 2007 Exports (GWh) Imports (GWh) Electricity Losses (%) Total Distribution Transmission Generation 16.1 9.1 3.9 3.1 6.70 21:00 30 Jun 08 19738 18500 814 251 2.4 76000 40271 2860 37045 26419 106595 1400 125129 350 15510 831
137
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 19.1 (contd) Statistical Data for Egypt 2008
Transmission Lines (Km) 400500 KV 220230 KV 132150 KV Substation Capacities (MVA) 400500 KV 220230 KV 132150 KV 7765 28850 3427 2512 14912 2439
138
CIGRE WG C1.9
139
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 19.5: Peak Load Curve 2003/2004 to 2004/2005 in Egypt Table 19.2: Load Forecast in Egypt
Year 1998/99 1999/00 2000/01 2001/02 2002/03 2003/04 2004/05 2005/06 2006/07 2007/08 2008/09 2009/10 2010/11 2011/12 Energy Demand (GWh) 56530 60806 64647 69176 74990 80697 85781 92431 99534 106484 113881 121519 129361 137438 Energy generated (GWh) 68000 73310 77956 83003 88951 94067 101605 109424 117750 126031 134803 143809 153053 162552 Peak Load (MW) 10919 11736 12376 13326 14401 14735 16454 17731 19050 20372 21771 23211 24677 26191
The total energy generation is projected to rise from 94 067 GWh in 2003/04 to 162 552 GWh in 2011/12 registering an average growth rate of 7% per annum
140
CIGRE WG C1.9
Peak load MW
MW
10
15
The generated energy and peak load of 2003/04 are taken as initial figures for the projection. In addition to the domestic market, export potential is growing with increasing demand from Libya and Jordan to which the country is interconnected.
141
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 19.8: Energy Forecast for Egypt Table 19.3: Customers by Sector
Company Industry Agriculture Gov. Utilities Houses Commercial Closed of postponed Other Total Total No. of Subscribers 415171 60402 165424 15687337 1176203 2931030 330205 20765772
Based on studies recently carried out on transmission network planning and investment criteria, the main planning and design criteria are summarized as follows: Planning horizons vary from short term (few years ahead) to long term (up to 20 years ahead). Egypt has recently achieved a Master Plan of its transmission system having the year 2030 as the final target year. The main technical criteria for transmission system development is the N-1 security criterion. It is related to the loss of single circuit, transformer or generator, when after the occurrence of a fault event the following consequences are to be avoided:
142
CIGRE WG C1.9 o thermal overloading of branches, o voltage deviations above permitted range, o loss of stability, o loss of load, and o interruption of power transits, Disturbance spreading over power system. The N-2 criterion is not applied. As for the security margins, some restrictions on the generating unit capability limits are imposed, specifically on the Qmax and Qmin limits. Concerning the capability of lines and transformers, the operational planning units in the national dispatching centres usually do not define different thermal ratings for winter and summer operational conditions, as it happens in Europe, but rather for normal and emergency conditions. Moreover, different ratings are defined based on the age of equipment. Generally, for reliability analysis the probabilistic approaches or the assessment of the probability of N-1 events during transmission system planning are not considered. Methods used by transmission planners are based on a deterministic approach and the probabilities of the occurrence of the various events (network failures, generator dispatch, branches availability, etc.) are not taken into consideration. Such an approach can be found only in some studies performed by foreign consulting companies. Load flow computations, static security analysis, short circuit calculations and system stability analyses are performed during the planning process. Uncertainties are mostly taken into account using multi-scenario analyses. uncertainties are: new power plants size and location generators engagement load forecasts country power balance The North African power utilities do not have any specific criteria for interconnection line construction, but commissioning of an interconnection requires a higher hierarchical level of analysis where possible. Incoherency in planning criteria and system constraints must be solved, as well as all aspects related to the engineering issues and coordination (e.g.: protection philosophy and relay 143 The most important
CIGRE WG C1.9 settings). Considering the complexity of interconnection studies, quite often the prefeasibility and feasibility studies for the different kinds of interconnections (HVAC, HVDC) are performed by foreign consulting companies. The specific economic criteria for interconnection lines are based on difference in electricity prices or on the overall change in system operational costs derived from different interconnection options and different operating regimes of power systems.
The Egyptian Electricity Holding Company (EEHC) has developed a Generation Expansion Plan to meet the increased demand and system reliability in the Unified Power System (UPS) in the short-tomedium term.
Table 19.5: Supply and Demand
The supply-demand analysis also takes into account the reserve margin required for maintenance, forced outages and de-rating.
144
CIGRE WG C1.9 The following are the existing interconnections: Egypt-Libya interconnection. Implemented on 28/05/1998. Egypt-Jordan interconnection. Implemented on 21/10/1998. Syria-Jordan interconnection. Implemented on 08/03/2000. Furthermore, Egypt is co-operating with other African nations to build another interconnection under the Nile Basin Initiative (NBI), which encompasses Burundi, Eritrea, Ethiopia, Kenya, Rwanda, Sudan, Tanzania, and Uganda.
Table 19.6: Interconnection
145
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 19.7: Investment Plan
The investment plan focuses on generation capacity expansion and expansion of the transmission and distribution networks, at a total investment cost estimated at US$ 8 220 million. Of the total investment cost, some US$4 341 million will be in foreign exchange and US$3 879 million in local currency. N-security conditions The basic assumptions related to the N criterion of the transmission network are: The rating limits of transmission lines should be intended as maximum permanent currents. In normal operating conditions, no overload of the transmission network is allowed. No generator will be above its continuous reactive capability with possible restrictions decided by the planner to account for operational constraints. The loads are represented as constant active and reactive powers. In normal operating conditions a long-term overload of transformers up to 10% of nominal rating is allowed. A short term overload (less than 15 minutes) is allowed up to 20%.
146
CIGRE WG C1.9 For the transmission system generally, unless otherwise specified, the maximum operating voltages are as follows: For 500 kV network maximum voltage is 525 kV. For 400 kV network maximum voltage is 420 kV. For 220 kV network maximum voltage is 231 kV. For 150 kV network maximum voltage is 158 kV. For 132 kV network maximum voltage is 139 kV. For 90 kV network maximum voltage is 95 kV. For 66 kV network maximum voltage is 72.6 kV. The minimum operating voltages values are as follows: For 500 kV network minimum voltage is 475 kV. For 400 kV network minimum voltage is 380 kV. For 220 kV network minimum voltage is 209 kV. For 150 kV network minimum voltage is 142 kV. For 132 kV network minimum voltage is 125 kV. For 90 kV network minimum voltage is 85 kV. For 66 kV network minimum voltage is 59.4 kV. Operating Frequency: The nominal frequency of North African countries is 50 Hz and its permissible variation range under AGC is 50 0.05 Hz. Under normal operating condition the maximum permissible variation range is50 0.2 Hz. N-1 security conditions The following criteria are applied under N-1 contingency conditions: The transmission system should be planned such that reasonable and foreseeable contingencies do not result in the loss or unintentional separation of a major portion of the network or in the separation from the regional interconnected system. During contingency conditions, a temporary overload of the transmission lines is allowed up to 10%. A temporary overload of transformers is allowed in emergency conditions up to 20% during peak hours. The maximum post-transient voltage deviation is 10%.
CIGRE C1.9 AFRICA STUDY REPORT
147
CIGRE WG C1.9 For the transmission system generally, unless otherwise specified, the maximum operating voltages values are as follows: For 500 kV network maximum voltage is 550 kV. For 400 kV network maximum voltage is 440 kV. For 220 kV network maximum voltage is 242 kV. For 132 kV network maximum voltage is 145.2 kV. For 66 kV network maximum voltage is 72.6 kV. The minimum operating voltages values are as follows: For 500 kV network minimum voltage is 450 kV. For 400 kV network minimum voltage is 360 kV. For 220 kV network minimum voltage is 198 kV. For 132 kV network minimum voltage is 118.8 kV. For 66 kV network minimum voltage is 59.4 kV. Operating range frequency: During N-1 contingency conditions, the maximum and minimum permissible frequencies are 50.4 Hz and 49.6 Hz respectively. In the case of a severe incident, the maximum and minimum permissible frequency limits are 52 Hz and 47.5 Hz respectively. Transmission Network Planning Probabilistic Approach The probabilistic approach is seldom used in planning studies directly. However, the probabilistic approach is being widely used in interconnection studies among the North African Countries (e.g.: the MEDRING and the ELTAM studies). Unless specific data is provided, the basic assumptions adopted concerning the unavailability of the transmission system, are given in Table 19.8:
Table 19.8: Transmission Line Forced Unavailability Rate
VOLTAGE LEVEL [kV] 500400 220 15090 UNAVAILABILITY RATE [p.u./100 km] 0.005 0.0025 0.005
148
CIGRE WG C1.9 As no reliability data on the transformers is available, standard hypotheses for these values are assumed. It is assumed that the transformers have an availability of 99.5%. Also for reactors and capacitors, records on their reliability are not normally available, hence standard hypotheses for these values are adopted. More specifically, it is assumed that the reactive compensation equipment has an availability of 99.5%. Three different weather conditions, Normal, Bad and Stormy, are considered and, unless otherwise specified, the parameters used to simulate the weather effect are set out in Table 19.9.
Table 19.9: Parameters of Weather Model
Weather Conditions Hours Ratio [p.u.] Normal Bad Stormy 0.9667 0.03 0.003 Coefficients [p.u.] 1.0 10.0 15.0
As an indicator of the system adequacy, the annual value of Expected Energy Not Supplied (EENS) due to unavailability in the transmission system and/or generation considering the constraints represented by the transport capacities of the lines and active power limits of the power plants, is used. A threshold value 10-4 p.u. is assumed for the EENS index related to insufficiency of the transmission system due to a reduction in the transmission capacity of the network. Economic evaluation in transmission-generation planning The price of EENS for an economic evaluation can vary from 0.5 USD/kWh up to 2 USD/kWh. The generation margins and the loss of load probability adopted for the reliability study are the following: Minimum generation margin reserve: 15%. Loss of load probability (LOLP): 524 hrs/year. The highest value is valid whenever the systems are operated in islanded mode. Power reserve requirements and criteria Power systems in North Africa are operated with a primary frequency control and a LFC (Load Frequency Control). Primary and Secondary reserves are determined by each operator. The policy for power reserve adopted in Egypt is set out according to the Operating Rules in the Egyptian power system. The frequency and active power control is provided by the following means: Automatic response from generating units operating in a free governor frequency sensitive mode (Primary Reserve), and
149
CIGRE WG C1.9 Automatic Generation Control (AGC) of generating units equipped with automatic load frequency control (Secondary Reserve). To ensure network security in the EEHC and other national systems composing the South-Eastern Mediterranean synchronous pool (Libya, Jordan, Syria, Lebanon), after the most severe outage considered, the total needed Primary Control Reserve is pre-determined at a value of 250 MW composed of 150 MW thermal reserve and 100 MW hydro reserve. As for the Secondary Reserve, there are 20 units of TPP and 10 units of HPP under the AGC. The goal of the Secondary Control Reserve is to restore frequency and cross-border exchange to the set values. The characteristics of actual operating reserves for power production are detailed below. They are used as reference values.
Table 19.10: Operational Criteria for Definition of Operating Reserve in Egypt
Type of Operating Reserve Primary spinning reserve (within 30 sec) Secondary spinning reserve (within 14.5 minutes): In winter In summer Cold reserve (within 15 minutes) Value MW 250 Comments 100 MW Hydro Generation 150 MW Thermal Generation Hydro-Thermal generation Hydro-Thermal generation Interconnection lines Gas turbines
150
CIGRE WG C1.9 Economic Criteria (capital investment, IRR, NPV), in transmission network planning are applied. In the economic evaluations, the reduction in the cost of the losses is usually estimated, but additional benefits related to the reduction of congestion costs are also taken into account as well as the increase of transmission service revenues. Generally, the TSOs or the VIUs have not defined the cost of EENS and the applied values are agreed for each study among the local experts. also taking into account the experience of the Consulting companies, whenever they are involved in the execution of the transmission system studies. Usually, the undelivered electricity costs across North Africa range between 0.5 and 2 US$/kWh. Market-oriented transmission investments (merchant lines) and investments from a regional perspective are not applied. National transmission networks are mainly planned according to technical considerations and economic rationalization of new investments. Egypt introduced IPP and public funding from 2003 onwards, and attracted investment in 6548 MW of generation. Also, some manufacturing capabilities have been localized: 100% for distribution 80% for transmission 40% for generation This has resulted in eventual lower cost. Egypts population has close to 100% access to electricity, but growth rate and need for funding high.
151
CIGRE WG C1.9
20.
Equatorial Guinea
CIGRE WG C1.9 exploratory offshore petroleum well was drilled in early 1982. In 1991, production was initiated from the offshore Alba gas condensate field in the Gulf of Guinea. Exports of oil began in April 1992. By mid-1999, production amounted to about 90,000 barrels per day. Equatorial Guinea's total oil production in 2001 averaged 181,000 barrels per day, a tenfold increase from 1996. Future oil production was estimated at 120,000300,000 barrels per day following an oil discovery at the La Ceiba deep-water field in September 1999. A $450 million methanol plant on Bioko began production of natural in 2001. [4]
153
CIGRE WG C1.9 generated is derived from hydro-power and the remainder is from fossil fuels. Increased opportunities exist in gas utilisation projects, as the Hydrocarbons Law has made it illegal to flare gas. This has led to reduction in gas flared, which is now utilized in gas projects to generate electric power.
20.5 References
1. www.estandardsforum.org 2. http://kpmgng.lcc.ch 3. http://www.mbendi.com/indy/powr/af/eq/p0005.htm 4. http://www.nationsencyclopedia.com/Africa/Equatorial-Guinea-ENERGY-AND-POWER.html
154
CIGRE WG C1.9
21.
Eritrea
155
CIGRE WG C1.9 Load forecasting approach and methodology. Up to 1998 the power demand in Eritrea was growing annually by 10% to 11%. From that it was not difficult to forecast the power need in Eritrea up to the year 2015. Based on the forecast conducted in the previous years, a new power plant of 88 MW was constructed in the years 19982000 (which was commissioned in 2003). Studying the trend of growth of power demand, the next step of forecast was to start from 2015. However, due to the border conflict between Ethiopia and Eritrea, things were complicated and the forecast anticipated has still not materialized. An intensive load growth and power demand study is being conducted on the growing townships and new industries to be included in the national plan. This will be prepared either by internal resources or if necessary by employing consulting firms. This study (of the distribution system) becomes the base for the gross load forecast for the overall power system in the country. When there is a need for upgrading the existing transmission system or for the installation of a new transmission system, frequently a new substation that interfaces the transmission system with the distribution system has to be built. Reinforcement of the distribution system is determined by the customer load density in the specific area. In Eritrea there are several remote towns with isolated power plants. These power plants are helping the towns to develop their overall economic activities, but on the other hand, these small power plants are burden for EEC. The reason is that the plants are small and less efficient.
156
CIGRE WG C1.9
21%
57% 22%
Industry
House hold
Commercial
Generation Planning When planning generation, the generation equipment and facilities are selected and designed according to the requirements of the specific area they are required to serve. During the design process, criteria such as maximum power output, the altitude where the machines are to be installed, the working conditions of the site, whether the power plant is to contribute to the pool or whether it is to be operate independently, whether the machines will be in continuous or short time duty service, the impact on the environment etc., are all taken in account. When designing a power plant, the duration of the service period and the reserve margin is very important. For example, when the 88 MW plant was being designed in Eritrea, it was planned to serve at least for 10 years before any additional capacity would be required. At present with the existing situation in Eritrea, the generation reserve margin in the interconnected system is about 55%, compared to the minimum accepted 30%. The isolated self-contained power plants generally have a reserve margin of 0%. Transmission Planning and Design Criteria Transmission planning is not as frequent as generation planning. The transmission system is planned for a longer period. During the design of the transmission system several conditions should be investigated. The design should take into account the impact of the transmission installations on the environment, the area covered by the system, the safety level, cost, voltage level, its integration with the distribution system, etc. In Eritrea the land belongs to the government. Therefore, planning of the transmission system anywhere does not create serious problems from the transmission line servitude point of view. The only aspect that has to be looked into is that the system should not cross any private property. If so, compensation should be paid. The impact on the environment is also very important. Other conditions can be handled by the normal design procedure of the transmission system.
157
CIGRE WG C1.9 Eritrea at present has 71 km of 132 kV and 320 km of 66 kV transmission lines. Formerly, medium voltage was 5.5 kV and low voltage was 127/220 volts. Now these voltages levels are out dated. At present medium voltages are 15 kV and 33 kV while low voltage is 220/380 volts.
158
CIGRE WG C1.9
21.8 References
1. www.estandardsforum.org
159
CIGRE WG C1.9
22.
Ethiopia
160
CIGRE WG C1.9 professionalism and thereby attract funding for 3000MW of projects
CIGRE WG C1.9 supplying more than 777 007 customers in 2005 and at present is supplying about 1 396 000 customers. The demand for electricity in Ethiopia stands at more than 622 MW. At present EEPCo has an installed generating capacity of 814 MW, which translates to about 192 MW of reserve margin. The installed generating capacity is estimated to be 1 110 MW by the year 2010, and it will go up to 1 745 MW by the year 2015. Over 98% of the total generation in the country comes from the hydro power sources [2]. EEPCo is responsible for ensuring adequate transmission capacity to maintain supply and quality of electricity. Official statistics show that 1 690 GWh of electricity was produced and 1 380 GWh was sold in the year 2000. Industry accounted for about 38% of consumption and 39% of sales revenue, while domestic consumption was 37% and 28% of sales revenue. Projected energy requirements from the year 1990 through 2040 indicate that power generation capacity needs will increase more than 3 times by 2020, and about 4 times by the year 2040. Ethiopia electricity statistics, system peak demand is forecast to increase from 484 MW in 2005 to 1 044 MW in 2020, which indicates an average annual growth rate of 5.2%. In the same years, power sales average annual growth rate is 5.1%. The Ethiopia electricity statistics are illustrated in Table 22.1 below:
Table 22.1: Electricity Statistics (historical & forecast) of Ethiopia
Year Powersales GWh Net generation GWh Peak load MW 2000 1 380 1 690 331 2002 1 650 2 010 396 2005 2 010 2 460 484 2010 2 640 3 250 639 2015 3 370 4 170 819 2020 4 290 5 310 1 044 2040 5 470 6 790 1 333
162
CIGRE WG C1.9 three small hydro power plants was only 6.2 MW. The total energy output capability of the ICS and SCS were about 2 278.6 GWh, and 39.2 GWh, per year (2004). Table 20.2 illustrate the installed capacity in Ethiopia in the year 2004. Summary of installed capacity in MW (2004) is set out in Table 22.2:
Table 22.2: Installed Capacity and Generation Mix in Ethiopia 2004
System ICS SCS ICS + SCS Hydro MW 662.6 6.2 668.8 Diesel MW 43.3 25.0 68.3 Geothermal MW 7.3 7.3 Total MW 713.2 31.2 744.4
There is a possibility of power trade between Ethiopia and adjacent countries (Sudan, Djibouti and Kenya). The Eastern Nile Subsidiary Action Programme (ENSAP) is being planned jointly with Egypt and Sudan to develop the regions irrigation and hydropower generation. This will initially include joint hydro projects between Ethiopia and Sudan on the Baro, Akobo and Birbir rivers. To promote the sustainability and management of the Nile waters for a range of activities including power generation, the Nile Basin Initiative has been developed. Subsequently it has also been decided to 163
CIGRE WG C1.9 establish a regional office in Addis Ababa to co-ordinate the ENSAP.
164
CIGRE WG C1.9
CIGRE WG C1.9 schools and on the hours available for children to study at night. Public street lighting will improve the quality of life and the safety of the population living in the communities. The Second Electricity Access Rural Expansion project will focus on the following components: Grid Access Expansion will extend the grid to connect customers in rural towns and villages not currently electrified. This will connect about 265 rural towns including 252 000 potential customers and a population of about 1.1 million inhabitants. It will help install public street lighting and also connect 286 000 new or indirect household customers to the grid distribution system. To ensure affordability, poor customers will be offered 5-year-loans to defray the costs of connection, and will receive energy efficient bulbs to reduce the monthly payments. Off-Grid Access Expansion aims to connect 40 000 new customers in 30 rural towns, using renewable technologies, and will provide some basic electric services (such as lighting and cooling) to remote clinics and schools in very remote areas. Capacity Building in key technical and institutional areas will support scaling up of electrification and efficient use of energy. As part of the Lighting Africa effort, the project will pilot 5 000 stand-alone systems using modern, energy efficient technologies such as LEDs. Also, the project will work hand in hand with rural communities to increase post-harvest agricultural productivity as a result of electricity access [5].
22.8 References
1. http://www.geni.org/globalenergy/library/national_energy_grid/ethiopia/index.shtml 2. http://www.eepco.gov.et/profile.html 3. http://www.bgr.de/geotherm/ArGeoC1/pdf/06%20Energy%20master%20plan.pdf 4. http://www.energy-ethiopia.org/downloads/Event_Pr_EEPCo.pdf 5. http://web.worldbank.org/WBSITE/EXTERNAL/COUNTRIES/AFRICAEXT/ETHIOPIA EXTN 6. http://web.worldbank.org/WBSITE/EXTERNAL/NEWS 7. www.geni.org/globalenergy/issues/ethiopia/index.shtml
167
CIGRE WG C1.9
23.
Gabon
The table above shows the energy consumption in comparison with the energy that was produced in Gabon in 2005. As illustrated above, Gabon did not export electricity to other countries nor import since they had a bit over the energy that they required.
168
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 23.2: Electricity consumption 9
169
CIGRE WG C1.9
170
CIGRE WG C1.9
23.8 References
1. http://www.eoearth.org/article/Gabon 2. http://www.reeep.org/index.php?id=9353&text=policy&special=viewitem&cid=68 3. http://www.mbendi.com/indy/powr/af/ga/p0005.htm 4. http://reegle.info/countries/GA 5. www.estandardsforum.org 6. http://www.afdb.org/fileadmin/uploads/afdb/Documents/Project-andOperations/Gabon%20-%202011-2015%20Country%20Strategy%20Paper.pdf 7. http://www.voanews.com/content/gabon-boosts-energy-power-generation-141690993/181302.html 8. http://www.en.legabon.org/index.php?m=2&s=0&a=33 9. http://www.indexmundi.com/g/g.aspx?c=xx&v=81
171
CIGRE WG C1.9
24.
Gambia
CIGRE WG C1.9 end of NAWECs monopoly, increase competition, and improve services. The Act also envisages private sector participation in the distribution of electricity [3]. Figure 24.1 shows the proposed 225 kV line that will link The Gambia with Senegal, Guinea, and Guinea-Bissau as part of the Organisation pour la Mise en Valeur du Fleuve Gambie (OMVG).
The Electricity Act regulates power generation, transmission, distribution and marketing in Gambia. The Act determines the standards relating to the sector and attributions of the Department of State. It sets the conditions for tariffs and granting of licenses. [4] Public stakeholders [11] The public stakeholders involved in the Gambian electricity sector are, among others: The Presidency of the Head of State, through a Permanent Secretariat, ensures technical guardianship and is responsible for drafting and enforcing the general policy of the sector,
173
CIGRE WG C1.9 The Public Utilities Regulatory Authority (PURA) is a multi-sectoral regulatory body, an independent authority. It was created in February 2005 and is chiefly responsible for granting licenses to operators, fixing tariffs, defining quality and service standards, and also reviewing and approving investment plans, The Gambia Divestiture Agency (GDA) is responsible for monitoring the state disengagement from companies, particularly from public enterprises, The Gambia Renewable Energy Centre (GREC) is in charge of research and development, information. The sector operators [11] The historical operator remains the National Water and Electricity Company (NAWEC), which is a public limited company. 97% of its capital is held by the Gambian state, 1% by the Social Security and Housing Finance Corporation (SSSFC), 1% by the Gambia Telecommunication Company (GAMTEL) and 1% by the Gambia Port Authority (GPA). Its prime mission is supplying the national territory with water and electricity. Independent Power Producers are also interested in the generation segment.
CIGRE WG C1.9 hours a day. The self-generation capacity of hotels and some industrial units is very important and credited with a 56 MW installed capacity. The NAWEC power system is not interconnected to any other power system of the region. Generation [11] In 2005, the NAWEC gross power generation amounted to 156.268 GWh as against 128.061 GWh in 2004, i.e. an increase of 22%. Efficiency of the power system [11] Net energy delivered to the distribution network in 2005 stood at 91.889 GWh as against 80.233 GWh in 2004, which is a 14.5% increase. The gross efficiency of the network amounted to 58.8% in 2005 as against 62.65% in 2004, which is a 3.85% decrease. The called-up peak capacity (under load shedding conditions) on NAWEC network was 25.8 MW in 2005 as against 25.1 MW in 2004, i.e. a 2.78% increase. This peak capacity was determined on 22 October 2005 at 08:00 pm. The estimated peak demand is 63 MW. Electricity demand forecasts [11] In 200 NAWEC total generation was obtained from its own thermal facilities located at Kotu in Banjul suburb. The average growth rate is 7.8% per year for energy demand, and 8.0% for capacity demand. Table 22.1 below, shows the electricity demand forecasts in peak capacity (MW) and in energy (GWh) of The Gambia.
Table 24.1: The Gambian Power Demand Forecast (MW, GWh) [11]
2006 Energy (GWh) Capacity (MW) 368.97 78 2007 416.28 88 2008 463.58 98 2009 501.42 108 2010 596.03 126 2015 724.28 156 TMC (2006-15) 7.78% 8.0%
Generation fleet In 2005, the total generation of NAWEC installed capacity was 48.8 MW, of which 32.2 MW was available, that is 65.9% of the total installed capacity. The generation fleet is essentially thermal and is located at Kotu in Banjul suburb. The configuration of Kotus thermal plant is shown in below. Figure 24.2 is a graphical representation of electricity net generation from 1980 to 2006.
175
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 24.2: The Gambian Power Demand Forecast (MW, GWh)
176
CIGRE WG C1.9 Transmission and distribution networks [11] NAWEC power transmission and distribution lines totaled 261 km in 2005 made up of 106 km at 33 kV and 155 km at 11 kV. The low voltage (LV) network, totaled 443 km of line. The NAWEC installed transforming capacity stood at 144 MVA in 2005, made up of 68 MVA on the transmission system and 76 MVA on the distribution system. Figures 24.3 and 24.4 below are graphical representations of electricity consumption and installed capacity respectively from 1980 to 2006. Quality of service of the transmission and distribution network [11] NAWEC cumulated global losses on the generation, transmission and distribution system were 30% in 2005.
177
CIGRE WG C1.9
178
CIGRE WG C1.9 split according to the size of MW demand fed from a particular area of the network, or the number of customers connected, and different security criteria applied to the different demand categories. Minimum transmission voltage standard [5] The voltage of all transmission networks at operating voltages of less than 400 kV should be maintained within +/-10% of nominal. The voltage of transmission networks operating at voltages of greater or equal to 400 kV should be maintained within +/-5% of nominal. Deviations from these limits can be agreed where the normal voltage at a customer connection point is not the nominal voltage.
CIGRE WG C1.9 subsidizing small customers [8]. In 1993, the government decided to involve the private sector in the management of NAWEC through a leasing arrangement. Relations with the private partner soured rapidly because of illdefined contractual clauses regarding government obligations to finance or guarantee investments and an inadequate regulatory framework [8]. There is a feasibility study underway for the electrification of the western region of The Gambia and the possible upgrading of the GBA network to accommodate higher transmission voltage levels. Studies are also underway for the eventual connection of The Gambia to the West African Power Pool (WAPP). NAWEC proposes to erect an additional diesel power plant in Brikama with an initial capacity of 10 MW, to be eventually increased to 30 MW.
24.8 References
180
CIGRE WG C1.9 1. Nexant Inc. West Africa Regional Transmission Stability Study. Volume 2: Master Plan. URL http://www.ecowapp.org/Volume 2 Master Plan - Final.pdf. Last accessed: 18 August 2009. 2. The Energy Sector. Electricity, LPG and Renewable Energy. URL: http://www.gambia.gm/Energy_Sector/energy_sector.html. Last accessed: 5 August 2009. 3. dgmarket Tenders Worldwide. Electricity and Water Sector Study and Assessment of Options for Private Sector Participation in the National Water and Electricity Company Limited (NAWEC). URL: http://www.dgmarket.com/tenders/np-notice.do~1396216. Last accessed: 6 August 2009. 4. Yahya A.J.J. Jammeh. Electricity Act, 2005. URL: http://pura.gm/documents/electricity/ElectricityAct.pdf 5. Public Utilities Regulatory Authority (PURA). Guidelines on Minimum Quality of Service and Relaibility Standards for Electric. URL: http://pura.gm/documents/electricity/PURA Minimum Quality Service Reliability.doc. Last accessed: 6 August 2009. 6. The Gambia Experince. Gambia unveils advanced electricity scheme. URL: http:/www.gambia.co.uk/Gambia-News/2007/12/18384819/Gambia-unveils-advancedelectricity-scheme.aspx. Last accessed: 11 August 2009. 7. African Development Bank. The Gambia: 20022004 Country Strategy Paper Update. URL: http://www.afdb.org/fileadmin/uploads/afdb/Documents/Project-andOperations/ADB-BD-IF-2006-272-EN-GAMBIA-CSP-UPDATE.PDF. Last accessed: 11 August 2009. 8. The International Monetary Fund and the International Development Association. The Gambia. URL: http://www.imf.org/external/np/hipc/2000/gmb/gambiadp.pdf. Last accessed: 11 August 2009. 9. Gambia News. NAWEC chooses NEPCO to upgrade electricity sector. URL: http://www.gambianow.com/news/General/Gambia-News-:-NAWEC-chooses-NEPCO-toupgrade-electricity-secto.html. Last accessed: 18 August 2009. 10. Energy Information Administration. Swaziland Energy Profile. URL: http://tonto.eia.doe.gov/country/country_energy_data.cfm?fips=GA. Last accessed: 11 August 2009.
181
CIGRE WG C1.9 11. West African Power Pool. 2005 Performance Indicators of WAPP Member Utilities Power Systems. URL: http://www.ecowapp.org/WAPP PDFS/KPI-ENG.pdf. Last accessed: 11 August 2009.
182
CIGRE WG C1.9
25.
Ghana
Ghana was the first African team to qualify for 2010 World Cup in South Africa and the only African team to make it to the second round.
The development of the Ghana electricity sector took place over three successive periods [2], [3]: The period prior to Akosombo (19141967) o Before the refurbishment of Akosombos hydro electric plant, Ghanas power generation was by means of diesel units, scattered throughout the country and supplying isolated networks. The first public power utility was established in 1914 in the Sekondi region, in central Ghana. That system was installed to be exploited all along the railway network by the railway company, The Gold Coast Railway Administration. That type of power system was developed and quickly expanded to other areas such as Takoradi in 1928. Concurrently, the public works services, Public
183
CIGRE WG C1.9 Works Department (PWD) became involved in the electrification task of other localities of the country. o As of 1947, the Electricity Department of the Ministry of Public Works and Housing was created to take over the electricity activities of the Public Works Department and The Gold Coast Railway Administration. One of the relevant achievements of the department was the construction of the Tema 1.95 MW thermal plant in 1956, and its gradual expansion from 1961 to 1964 to a 35 MW capacity. The plant was then the largest diesel plant in Africa. It supplied the Tema area and the major part of Accra via a 161 kV line. The period known as Hydro Years. The Volta River Authority (VRA) was established in 1961 by the enactment of Act 46 relating to the harnessing of the Volta River, Volta River Development Act. VRA was assigned the role of harnessing the potential of the Volta River, and ensuring exploitation of generation facilities and power transmission in Ghana. Construction works of Akosombo dam commenced in 1962 to be completed in 1966, with an initial installed capacity of 588 MW. Two other units were added to the dam, thus increasing its installed capacity to 912 MW. The VRA commissioned Kpong hydro electric dam in 1982, at Akuse, downstream of Akosombo dam, with a 160 MW installed capacity. The period known as Thermal Completion. Ghana experienced a severe drought in 1983 which caused a critical deficit in electric energy. The VRA consequently initiated a study on the expansion plan of its generation and transmission system. The study was finalized in 1985 and confirmed the need to build thermal plants to meet the ever growing demand and to supplement hydro generation. From 1990 to 2000, the Ghana government embarked on reforms of its electric power sector with a view to making it more efficient and accessible to private operators. These reforms were expressed by the creation of new public stakeholders and the adoption of a series of Acts and legal texts, of which the main ones are listed below: o The Strategic Framework for Power Sector Development Policy in January 1994. o Setting up of the Power Sector Reform Committee (PRSC) to co-ordinate the drafting and implementation of reforms, in September 1994. 184
CIGRE WG C1.9 o Submission of the PRSC report setting out the findings and recommendations of various task forces in charge of reform works, in April 1997. o Putting in place a secretariat for implementing the reforms, and co-ordinating the implementation of identified recommendations of the PRSC Committee report in May 1997. o Change of the legal status and name of the Electricity Corporation of Ghana into the Electricity Company of Ghana, a joint-stock company, in February 1997. o Enactment of Act 538 instituting the creation of the multi-sectoral regulatory body, the Public Utilities Regulatory Commission in charge of setting up tariffs, watching over application of licensees liabilities and arbitrate disputes among operators, on the one hand, and between operators and consumers on the other hand, in October 1997. o Enactment of Act 541 relating to the creation of the Energy Commission as a regulatory body whose main responsibility is the granting of licenses and developing technical standards for the sector. The Energy Commission had to support the Ministry of Energy in drafting the sectoral policy of the government. The public stakeholders involved in the Ghana electricity sector are: The Ministry in charge of Energy that ensures the technical supervision and is responsible for the overall policy of the sector. The Public Utilities Regulation Commission (PURC), which is a multi-sectoral regulatory body, independent authority. It was established by Act 538 in 1997 and is chiefly responsible for fixing tariffs, watching over the quality of service and preserving the interests of all of the stakeholders of the sector (operators, state and consumers). The Energy Commission, a regulatory body, specific to the energy sector, which was created in 1997 and is mainly, assigned the role of supporting the Ministry of Energy in setting up an adequate energy policy, and in organizing the energy sector. It grants licenses, sets up technical standards and watches over their application, and elaborates development plans of various subsectors. The Energy Foundation, created in 1997, which is in charge of promotional programmes in energy economy and control among consumers.
185
CIGRE WG C1.9 Figure 25.1 shows the national grid of Ghana. The main operators involved in the exploitation and management of electric power generation, transmission, distribution and commercialization facilities are: The Volta River Authority (VRA) is a public limited company, the capital of which is 100% owned by the Ghanaian state. It is the operator of the power generation and transmission segment. It enjoys the transmission monopoly throughout the territory and acts as sole buyer with independent power producers. The last reform proposals paved the way for large customers to be supplied by independent producers. VRA enjoys, through its subsidiary, the Northern Electrification Department (NED), a distribution and electricity sales monopoly in the north of the country. Electricity Company of Ghana (ECG) is a state-owned utility in charge of electricity distribution in the southern part of the country. Northern Electrification Department (NED) is a VRA subsidiary in charge of developing and managing electricity in northern Ghana. Takoradi International Company (TICO) operates a power plant in Takoradi, constructed under a joint-venture contract between VRA and CMS Energy, an American company. Ghana has distributed 6 million free CFL light bulbs, and has reduced electricity consumption by 124 MW. Table 25.1 shows Ghanas electricity production, consumption, exports and imports in 2006.
Figure 25.2: Ghana Electricity Status in 2006
Production 8 204 GWh Consumption 6 760 GWh Exports 755 GWh Imports 629 GWh
Ghanas electrification rate has increased to 50%, and their self help electrification scheme has helped. Communities buy poles and stays for example, and contribute to the countries electrification scheme.
CIGRE WG C1.9 approximately 1.4 million, it has been estimated that 47% of Ghanaians, including 1517% of the rural population, have access to grid electricity, with a per capita electricity consumption of 358 kWh. All the regional capitals have been connected to the grid. Electricity usage in the rural areas is estimated to be higher in the coastal (27%) and forest (19%) ecological zones than in the savannah (4.3%) areas of the country [3]. In 2004, Ghanaians consumed 5 158 GWh of electricity. It is estimated that about half of this amount is consumed by residential consumers for household uses, while commercial and industrial users account for the rest. The majority of the customers are in service territories of the Electricity Company of Ghana (ECG) and the Northern Electrification Department (NED) and they are regulated. Deregulated consumers such as mines and aluminium companies account for one third of total consumption. One industrial entity, the aluminium smelter VALCO, can account for most of this amount when it is operating normally. Access to electricity in Ghana is 4547% compared to an average of 17.9% for West Africa [3]. Ghanas supply of electric power is obtained primarily from hydropower generated at the Akosombo and Kpong dams and two thermal plants (light crude oil fired) at Aboadze in the Western Region. Electricity is also obtained from renewable energy sources, in particular solar energy in remote rural communities. Table 25.2 illustrates the Ghana power demand forecast [3].
Table 25.1: Ghana Power Demand Forecast
Peak Capacity ECG NED Mines Direct Sales Valco Exports Total 2006 MW 961 103.4 192.7 28.2 150 81 1 516.3 2007 MW 1 005.5 112.0 221.9 28.9 225.2 81.2 1 674.9 2008 MW 1 055.1 121.4 262.6 30.4 225.2 81.4 1 776.1 2009 MW 1 104.8 129.0 265.1 31.1 225.2 98.7 1 853.8 2010 MW 1 155.9 131.8 267.9 31.7 225.2 98.9 1 911.4 2015 MW 1 441.4 168.2 275.2 35.2 225.2 99.8 2 245
187
CIGRE WG C1.9
Hydropower
Thermal Power
Bui 400 MW
TAPCO (Takoradi I) 330 MW TICO (Takoradi II) 220 MW Mines Reserve Plant 80 MW Power Barge 125 MW VRA Tema 126 MW Osonor Power 126 MW Asorgli Power 220 MW Cenpower 400 MW
Imports up to 250 MW
Figure 25.3: Generation Sources
The typical generation mix is as follows: In a good hydro year there is 60 to 80% hydro and 20 to 40% thermal, whereas in a bad hydro year there is 40% hydro and 60% thermal. Figure 25.1 shows generation sources, whilst Figure 25.2 shows the net generation of electricity.
188
CIGRE WG C1.9
In 2005, VRA total installed capacity was 1 730 MW made up of 1 180 MW from both Akosombo hydro electric (1 020 MW) and Kpongs (160 MW) and 550 MW from two thermal plants, TapCo (330 MW) and TiCo (220 MW), all of which are located at Aboadze in the vicinity of Takoradi in western Ghana. The TiCo plant was developed in partnership with CMS Energy which holds 90% of the capital and the VRA 10%, with an option to repurchase the whole of the capital in favour of VRA. Both thermal plants operate at present on Light Crude Oil (LCO) and Distillate Fuel Oil (DFO). They are expected in the short term to be converted to gas when the WAGP project is commissioned in 2007. It should be noted that as part of its rehabilitation, enhancement and modernization programme, VRA has just augmented Akossombo hydro electric generation capacity from 912 MW to 1 020 MW, and a similar project is under way at Kpong power plant. VRA has, apart from these generation plants, a 30 MW capacity back-up diesel plant located at Tema. TAG units mounted on barges (2 x 65.5 MW) at Effasu in western Ghana have been made available for VRA by Ghana National Petroleum Company for exploitation and maintenance but, they are yet to be connected to the network [2].
189
The domestic electric energy consumption is about 6 004 GWh. It is projected that the average local load growth in Ghana over the next decade would be about 6% as a result of which local consumption of electricity will reach 9 300 GWh by 2011. There is also potential for significant electricity exports and supply to VALCO as the smelter resumed operations in early 2005 under a new management structure. Figure 25.3 shows the net electricity consumption.
190
CIGRE WG C1.9
The firm capability of the hydro system of about 4 800 GWh represents about half of the projected domestic consumption for the year 2010. This implies that at least 50% of Ghanas electricity requirement by the year 2010 would be provided from thermal sources. On the basis of the studies carried out, the next generation addition is the completion of the expansion of the Takoradi power station. This involves the addition of 110 MW steam unit in order to complete the combined cycle arrangements for the TICO power plant. In the medium term, up to 600 MW of additional generating capacity will be required by 2012. It is planned that this additional capacity will be met through the establishment of thermal as well as hydro plants such as the Bui hydro project. An Indian company formally approached the Ghanaian government to fund the construction of the Bui hydroelectric dam. Currently, the Takoradi thermal power station is fuelled with light crude oil, which has appreciated significantly on the world market (between US$70 and 80 in August 2006). In order to secure a sustainable and cost-competitive fuel source, Ghana is involved in the West African Gas Pipeline (WAGP) project for power generation. The WAGP project involves the construction of a natural gas pipeline of about 600 km to supply natural gas from Nigeria to meet the energy requirements of Ghana and other West African countries. The countries presently involved in the project with Ghana are Nigeria, Benin and Togo. The WAGP project, which will provide a source of clean fuel for VRAs thermal generating facilities and other future thermal plants, is expected to 191
CIGRE WG C1.9 deliver the natural gas fuel at relatively lower costs than the current light crude oil. It is expected that the first gas will be delivered to the Takoradi plant by December 2006. In addition, Ghana is involved in the development of the West African Power Pool (WAPP), aimed at establishing a regional market for electricity trade. The WAPP is expected to allow the sharing of available energy resources and increase the reliability of electricity supply in the West African region. If the WAPP initiative succeeds, its benefits will yield several billions of dollars over the next couple of decades [3].
CIGRE WG C1.9
The number of towns connected before 1989 was 478 and the ones connected to date are 3 448. The towns connected through SHEP are 1 900. The accessibility at commencement (1989) was 15% and presently it is more than 60%. The polar photovoltaic project focused on the use of solar PV systems in 48 rural communities in Northern Ghana [6], [7].
193
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 25.2: Financial Performance of VRA, 19972002 (in Billion)
Year Operating profit/(Loss) Net Profit/(Loss) 1997 61.2 (58.6) 1998 18.7 (105.2) 1999 79.2 (283.2) 2000 (257.9) (983.3) 2001 (220.0) (329.7) 2002 (582.2) (1 269.1)
Since most of the electricity is generated from hydro facilities that were built several decades ago, the cost of generation was rather low (about 2 to 2.5 US cents per kWh). However, as demand grew and VRA experienced difficulty supplying electricity during years of low rainfall, new thermal plants were built in the late 1990s. These plants have generating costs ranging from 4.5 to 8 US cents per kWh and sometimes higher, depending on the cost of imported fuels such as light crude oil, raising the average cost of generation from about 2 US cents per kWh in the mid-1990s to about 6 US cents in 2002. However, tariffs to end-users have not always reflected these costs due to governments subsidized tariff policy. Electricity supply is divided into bulk electricity (transmission level) and final electricity (distribution level). The average bulk electricity price was below 4 US cents per kWh in the early 1990s until 1998, when it went up to between 4 to 4.5 US cents per kWh, below the cost of generation. After its establishment in 1997, the PURC started setting electricity tariffs, in consultation with key stakeholders comprising the generators, distributors and representatives of major consumers. The PURC developed a transition plan to trigger a gradual adjustment to economic cost recovery by 2003. The automatic price adjustment formula of the Transition Plan was implemented once in 2003 and twice in 2004, with the latest adjustment in 2004 affecting only the bulk supply tariff (BST) and the distribution service charge (DSC). The sum of the BST and the DSC is the end user tariff (EUT) charged by the distribution companies. The addition of thermal generation has pushed up the EUT to about 8.2 US cents per kWh, with a BST of about 4.8 US cents (including a postage stamp transmission charge of about 0.9 US cents) and a DSC of about 3.4 US cents. There are different tariffs for industrial, commercial (non-residential) and residential customers. The tariff for residential customers has a lifeline tariff for low consumption, which was set at 100 kWh per month maximum in 1989/90 but was downgraded to 50 kWh per month maximum by 2000, which is still high compared to some neighbouring countries (for example, 20 kWh for Benin and 40 kWh in Togo). The lifeline tariff is about US$1.50 per month. The government of Ghana subsidizes the 194
CIGRE WG C1.9 lifeline consumers to the tune of about US$1 per month but it has been unable to make regular and timely remittances to the utilities. The total subsidies owed by the government to the distribution utilities by the end of 2003 ranged from US$400 000 to US$1.4 million. The average tariff for final electricity was below 5 US cents per kWh until 1998 when it shot up to between 5.2 to 8.2 US cents per kWh. However, at a level above 8 US cents per unit, though relatively low compared to some neighbouring countries, the tariff is not attractive for high level commercial and industrial usage. At the same time, industrial customers subside residential consumers. These policies are hampering the development of an industrial base in Ghana that can compete in regional and global markets, and fuel economic growth. There are a number of other challenges in fixing the distortions in electricity tariffs. First, utilities need to improve their operational efficiencies so that they can be financially sound while lowering tariffs for consumers of electricity. A second and related challenge concerns the average tariff collection efficiency, which has ranged from 75% to 85%. The PURC has a benchmark of 95%. Although utilities are called upon to improve their customer relations and service quality, consumers need to act responsibly as well. Otherwise, the electricity system cannot be expanded reliably to meet the growing demand [3]. The National Electrification project is sponsored by JICA, DANIDA, World Bank, Dutch Government (ORET), SIDA, FINIDA, NDF and GEF through grants and soft loans. The Self Help Electrification Project (SHEP) is sponsored by Indian Ex-Im Bank, US Ex-Im Bank, SIDA, FINNIDA, South African Government and Chinese Ex-Im Bank through soft loans [6]. The two utility companies of Ghana and Togo are providing 2.1 million Euros for the Kajebi-Badou interconnection project while the European Union (EU) is providing the balance of 1.5 million Euros. The EU is providing another 13.2 million Euros in grant to ECOWAS for two other cross-border medium voltage projects along the Ghana-Burkina Faso and the Cte dIvoire-Liberia borders. Funding is also obtained under the EUACP Energy Facility [5].
195
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 25.4: Distribution of Staff by Category
CATEGORY Directors Other Management Staff Electrical Engineers Technician Engineers Works Superintendents Human Resource Officers Accounts and Audit Officers Other Senior Staff Junior (technical) Junior (non technical) Gen. Workers and Security staff Total 2007 8 157 112 476 45 32 213 253 1 466 1 684 533 4 979 2006 8 156 70 472 55 34 223 257 1 462 1 634 450 4 931
One of the major problems for underdevelopment in Ghana can be attributed to the inadequate of human resources in the country and other resources. This is because of the inadequate practical training given to both students and workers of science, technical and other aspect of studies. Students in both the tertiary and high schools lack the practical aspect of what they study. There Ghanaian students and workers that theoretically know what their career is about but practically they fumble and struggle. This therefore causes the country to lack the human resource to move the country from a technologically-stagnant country to technologically-dynamic country. What can be done to enhance this part of the human resource is by exposing both the students and workers to practical training in their field and not only the theoretical aspect. [9] The low human resource in the country is due to the financial status of the country, i.e. the ability of the country to financially manage the sources that usually make up the human resources, such sources include feasibility studies. There are citizens available to take on to the management of their natural resources but the finances to help the people or the citizens are the problem. There are those who are ready and are also educated to the tertiary level or over. In order to solve the problem in the country, there is the need for the government to help the individual and for workers to help further their education. The available human resource personnel in the country should take time to make sure that the implementation of relevant policies, processes or standards that will bring development to the country is done with patriotism. [9]
25.8 References
1. http://www.geni.org/globalenergy/library/national_energy_grid/ghana/index.shtml 2. https://www.cia.gov/library/publications/the-world-factbook/geos/gh.html 196
CIGRE WG C1.9 3. Http://Www.Esi-Africa.Com/Node/7765 4. Guide to Electric Power in Ghana; First Edition; Resource Centre for Energy Economics and Regulation Institute of Statistical, Social and Economic Research University of Ghana, Legon; July 2005 5. http://ec.europa.eu/europeaid/where/acp/documents/com_interconnectivity_energy_en.pdf 6. http://www.club-er.org/upload/DOCAT306.ppt 7. http://www.e-parl.net/hearings/31/82/Akosombo_EParliament.ppt 8. Electricity Company of Ghana LTD.; Annual Report and Audited Accounts 2007. 9. http://www.ghanaweb.com/GhanaHomePage/NewsArchive/artikel.php?ID=197065
197
CIGRE WG C1.9
26.
Guinea
198
CIGRE WG C1.9
Guineas 110 kV transmission n system connects the hydro plants, Garafiri to Conakry, Kindia, Linsan and Mamou. A 30 kV line supplies the areas of Dalaba, Pita and Labe. Guinea has no indigenous sources of oil, natural gas or coal. It consumes and imports 9 000 barrels of oil a day. There is no oil refinery and as a result, all refined products such as gasoline and jet fuel must be imported. Of the installed electric capacity, 57% is hydropower and the remainder is thermal (oil and diesel). Guinea has great hydropower potential that could make it a major exporter of electricity. Its estimated potential is 6 100 MW but its installed hydropower capacity is 138 MW. In January 2008, China agreed to fund the $1 bn Souapiti hydropower dam project in return for rights to mine bauxite, the aluminum ore of which Guinea is the world's largest exporter. It will generate 750 MW of electricity. Along with Gambia, Guinea Bissau and Senegal, Guinea is a member of the Gambia River Basin Development Organization. There are plans to build hydropower plants on the Gambia River in Senegal and at Kaleta in Guinea to provide energy for the region and to construct electrical transmission lines between the 4 nations. The projects will be designed, financed, constructed and operated as a public-private partnership. Construction has not yet begun because of lack of financing. 199
CIGRE WG C1.9 The state owned Electricite De Guinee (EDG) is the producer, distributor and transmitter of electricity. It is in poor financial condition. In 2006, it could only provide about 35% of electrical demand. The electrification rate is 19%. There are frequent power outages and shortages, especially in rural areas [7].
147
204
396
375 949
394 1098
Peak demand for the mining sector reflects the continuing expansion of the interconnected network in Guinea, with 126 MW of new demand being connected in 2009, a further 75 MW in 2013, and the proposed aluminum smelter, 371 MW in 2014.
200
CIGRE WG C1.9 The structure of the existing and future installed capacity of the Guinea electric power system (EDG) is illustrated in Table 26.2.
Table 26.2: Future and Existing Installed Capacity of the Guinea Electric Power System [1]
Existing Generation Thermal Power Plants Hydro Power Plants Total Future Generation before 2011 Thermal Power Plants in 2004 Hydro Power Plants in 2008 Hydro Power Plants in 2009 Total 32.4 MW 105 MW 120 MW 257.4 MW Installed Capacity 67.4 MW 120.4 MW 187.8 MW
Current plans for generation foresee the development of hydro plants at Fomi (90 MW, 374 GWh/yr) in the medium term, and at Sambangalou (120 MW, 400 GWh/yr) and Kaleta (105 MW, 900 GWh/yr) in the frame work of OMVG development. The OMVG 225 kV transmission network will interconnect the countries of Guinea, Guinea-Bissau, Gambia and Senegal. Further transmission links to Mali and Cte dIvoire would be included with Fomi. A link from Linsan, on the HV transmission network in Guinea, to Bumbuna in Siera Leone is also anticipated at some time in the future.
201
CIGRE WG C1.9 Another interesting point is that its location in Haute Guinee would also provide an opportunity to build transmission links with: OMVG; Man, Cte dIvoire; Bamako, and Mali. It would also allow the extension of the Guinea transmission network into Haute Guinee and into Guinee-Forestiere. The feasibility study carried out by SNC-Lavalin in 1999 concluded that it would cost US$ 300 million and produce energy at 7 to 7.7c/kWh (11.3c/kWh, including the transmission network). The benefits from agriculture and fishing were also taken into account.
CIGRE WG C1.9 education, transport, electricity, health/HIV/AIDS, and rural electrification. The World Bank has approved the second phase of both the Village Community Support Project and the Third Urban Project. As the macro-economic situation and governance improve, the lending options will be enhanced. One of the eleven projects that the World Bank supports is the Efficiency Improvement Project. The Electricity Sector Efficiency Improvement Project of Guinea seeks to improve the electricity sectors commercial and operational efficiency. These results will be achieved through critical investment support and capacity building, affecting the financial viability of the sector and quality of service delivery. The project contributes to the reduction of carbon dioxide (CO2) emissions by addressing the large inefficiencies in the distribution sector and reducing energy losses. The project will support investments that aim at improving: (i) (ii) (iii) Distribution networks and generation capacity for reliability of supply, Commercial character, and Customer interface of the electricity sector.
Implementation of the Project will be structured along the following three components: Distribution efficiency improvement: The efficiency improvement programme referred to as the Commercial Re-orientation of the Electricity Sector Toolkit (CREST), comprising a set of best practice interventions, is designed and implemented by the Guinea Electricity Company (EDG) with active support from the World Bank team. The programme re-engineers core business processes (with a pronounced focus on the retail metering, billing and collection (MBC) functions), and deploys innovative technology solutions in order to improve service delivery to reduce technical and commercial losses. Rehabilitation (Repair and Maintenance) of Critical Generation: Investment support would be provided to EDG, through this project to improve the reliability and efficiency of the existing Garafiri hydroelectric plant and the Tombo thermal power plant. This will be in the form of assistance for critically required equipment and spare parts and technical assistance for operations. This component will also involve technical studies to better 203
CIGRE WG C1.9 analyse and understand the current condition of the generation facilities; and to identify required upgrades to improve generation capacity. Institutional Strengthening through Technical Assistance: A strong institutional base is fundamental to the sustained financial success of the power sector in Guinea. There is a clear and urgent need to develop a robust and modern technical, financial and accounting infrastructure base to support the efforts of EDG to improve its managerial, financial and operational performance. Further, opportunities for efficiency enhancements from private sector partnerships and demand side management (DSM) will be identified and explored [6].
26.8 References
1. Final Report West Africa Regional Transmission Stability Study. Volume 2: Master Plan. 2. http://fic.wharton.upenn.edu/fic/africa/Equatorial%20Guinea%20_2_.pdf 3. http://www.geni.org/globalenergy/library/national_energy_grid/guinea/guineanationallectri citygrid.shtm 4. http://www.eia.doe.gov/emeu/cabs/Equatorial Guinea/Full.html 5. http://www.state.gov/r/pa/ei/bgn/7221.htm 6. http://web.worldbank.org/external/projects 7. http://www.estandardsforum.org
204
CIGRE WG C1.9
27.
Guinea-Bissau
205
CIGRE WG C1.9 Figure 27.1 below shows the geographical location of Guinea Bissau.
CIGRE WG C1.9 MW Saltinho hydro project on the river Corubal could be developed as part of the OMVG but, at $US 82 million (equivalent to $US 4100 per kW, or approximately 13c per kWh), it is unlikely to be developed in the near future. [10]
207
CIGRE WG C1.9 economic and social development. Technical and non-technical losses contribute significantly to the financial problems of the sector. Repairs to the existing plant and transformers, and installation of meters are necessary to curb these losses Electrification covers only 12% of the country and electricity service costs are five times higher than in Senegal. The numerous shortages caused by the Public Company of Water and Electricity (EAGB) have forced companies to install electric generators. Guinea Bissau is endowed with several renewable energy resources; and in particular it receives a large amount of solar energy [10].
CIGRE WG C1.9 to ensure a reliable and affordable supply of water and electricity for economic growth, to ensure sustainability by improving water pricing and electricity tariffs for cost recovery and developing the Governments regulatory and planning capacity in these sectors, to encourage competition and private sector participation by reducing the governments involvement in these sectors and introducing, under open competitive bidding, a lease/concession contract with private management, and to ensure efficient consumer and producer behavior by introducing commercial pricing under incentive regulation. Through the project, electricity generation is expected to increase by 15 MW while the electricity bill payments are expected to rise from 40% to 80%. The capacity of the distribution network will grow from 11 500 MWh per year to 65 700 MWh with power distribution losses falling to below 10%.
27.8 References
1. Final Report West Africa Regional Transmission Stability Study. Volume 2: Master Plan. 2. http://www.infoder.org/en/Document.408.pdf 3. Document of the World Bank; Staff Appraisal Report, Republic of Guinea-Bissau Water and Energy Project; Report No: 17325-GUB, May 18 1998 4. http://www.infodev.org/en/Document.408.pdf 5. http://www.mbendi.com/indy/powr/af/gb/p0005.htm 6. http://www-wds.worlbank.org/external/default/main 7. Http://www.nationsenclyclopedia.com/economies/Africa/Guinea-Bissau-InfrastructurePower-and Communication.html 8. http://www.estandardsforum.org/secure_content/country_profiles/cp_82.pdf 9. http://www.reliefweb.int/rw/rwb.nsf/db900SID/KHII-6QT35A 10. http://www.icrgq.com/icregq-08/295-boccalletti.pdf 11. http://www.ecowapp.org/Volume%202%20Master%20Plan%20-%20Final.pdf
209
CIGRE WG C1.9
28.
Kenya
12% 0% 3%
210
CIGRE WG C1.9 The Kenya Power and Lighting Company Limited (KPLC) is a monopoly utility responsible for power transmission and distribution. The Energy Regulatory Commission (ERC) was established in terms of the Energy Act, 2006, and supercedes the previous Electricity Regulatory Board. The ERC is responsible for: Performing all the regulatory functions, setting, reviewing and approving tariffs, investigating tariff structures, enforcing environmental and safety regulations, investigating complaints made by consumers, ensuring that there is genuine competition where this is needed, and making recommendations to the Ministry of Energy in the granting and revocation of generation and distribution licenses. The Ministry of Energy oversees all the activities within the power sector.
In 1996, the Government of Kenya (GoK) officially liberalized power generation as part of a power sector reform effort. From that time onward, it became government policy that all bids for generation facilities would be put out for competition, open to both public and private firms, i.e. the national generator would receive no preferential treatment. The Energy Act of 2006 liberalized the sector further. IPPs are permitted to build generation and/or transmission capacity and to sell power directly to customers.
211
CIGRE WG C1.9
212
CIGRE WG C1.9
7,000
6,000
5,000
MW
4,000
3,000
2,000
1,000
Low Forecast
Reference Forecast
Years
High Forecast
213
CIGRE WG C1.9 Operational Considerations through the application of standard designs for ease of future operation & maintenance, and also to reduce existing operational risks. Safety Considerations adherence to statutory requirements for public safety and that of operating & maintenance personnel. Reliability the transmission system should be capable of meeting defined reliability standards. Environmental evaluation of environmental impact. Economics evaluation of life cycle costs. Performance achieving the defined technical requirements.
214
CIGRE WG C1.9 Changes in ambient temperatures, power transfer angles and inductive load component can affect the efficiency of transmission network operations. Human settlement, including relocation and resettlement. Carbon emissions. Meeting environmental regulations in planning: o EIA studies whose terms of reference are approved by the National Environment Management Authority (NEMA) have to be undertaken, and clearance by NEMA obtained before a project can be implemented.
215
CIGRE WG C1.9
216
CIGRE WG C1.9
217
CIGRE WG C1.9 Application of new technologies: The country is installing a new SCADA/EMS system for the national power control system. Customer bills can be queried through the use of mobile phones. Payment of electricity bills by the use of electronic systems is at the preparation stage. A pilot project on prepaid meters is currently under discussion for implementation.
218
CIGRE WG C1.9
29.
Lesotho
219
CIGRE WG C1.9 LEC and Eskom (South Africa) conduct cross-border sale/purchase transactions of surplus and emergency supplies. Electricity is still only available to around 11% of households. The Government of Lesotho has adopted a target penetration of 35% (about 140 000 households) by 2015. Considerable work has already been carried out to restructure and strengthen LEC and to design an appropriate regulatory regime. Since January 2002, LEC has been operated by a management contractor who has a mandate to restructure LEC and prepare it for privatization. Lesotho achieved a turnaround strategy by appointing new members in management team via a management contract and 37000 connections have been made recently.
The actual and projected annual maximum demand of Lesotho as illustrated in Figure 29.2:
220
CIGRE WG C1.9
Annual Maximum Demand MW 160 140 120 100
MW
80 60 40 20 0 1985 1990 1995 2000 years Annual Maximum Demand MW 2005 2010 2015
The actual and projected annual energy sent out by LEC is illustrated in Figure 29.3:
GWh
2010
2020
Lesotho has a main hydro power station, Muela, with some local mini-hydro generation. The balance of the power requirements are imported from South Africa (Eskom) via 132 kV interconnections.
221
CIGRE WG C1.9
8%
1%
91%
Muela
Eskom
LEC
222
CIGRE WG C1.9 Over the medium term, the Government of Lesotho is also considering adding additional hydropower capacity as a further development of the Muela phase 2 (LHWP0), 110 MW in the long term, and Monontsa pump storage, 1 000 MW. The Government is also placing strong emphasis on encouraging rural electrification outside LECs service territory. Currently LEC has bilateral Bulk Power Purchase Agreements with Muela and Eskom. LEC became a full Operating Member of the Southern African Power Pool (SAPP) in April 1999. This opened an opportunity for participation in the regional electricity competitive environment on equal trading partnership, conducted under the SAPP principles.
29.8 References
1. 061129%20RECIPES%20country%20info%20Lesotho.pdf 223
224
CIGRE WG C1.9
30.
Liberia
225
CIGRE WG C1.9
The electricity provider is the Liberia Electric Company (LEC), which is a public company. Its bill collection rate is only 68%, and as a result, it is experiencing financial difficulties. Before 1989, it had an installed capacity of 182 MW of which 35.2% was derived from hydro-power, 37.4% from natural gas fired plants and the remainder from diesel plants. At present though, the LEC is generating only 7 MW of power. Most businesses get their power from private generators. Only about 10% of the population has access to electricity produced mainly from private generators. [7] The LEC is a high-profile, high-impact government enterprise that has been revived through the EPP. Although still employing less that 100 people, LEC has demonstrated as a commercial organization that they can deliver a valuable service, collect an equitable fee for it, and fund their ongoing operations without public assets disappearing or going astray. Their distribution circuits run through many neighbourhoods and the constant presence of LEC employees in these neighbourhoods reading meters, inspecting equipment, and disconnecting illegal taps, is a demonstration of public responsibility for this service. [6]
CIGRE WG C1.9 The intensive drainage pattern gives Liberia very high potential for hydropower development as a source of energy. A review of the hydrographical map of Liberia in conjunction with earlier studies done by the Japan International Cooperation Agency revealed eleven potential sites for hydropower developments, in addition to the two which were already existing prior to the civil war. Pre-feasibility and feasibility studies have been done on only two of the eleven sites. [8] Those sites where feasibility studies have been carried out include Mano river site M-2 and St. Paul river basin. A pre-feasibility study was done for the St. John River site St-2, while only preliminary and reconnaissance investigations are available for the rest of the sites. The energy potentials of the various sites are given in Table 30.1 below:
Table 30.1: Sites with Hydro-electric Generation Potential [8]
Table 30.2 and Figure 30.2 show total electricity generated annually plus imports and minus exports, expressed in kilowatt-hours. The discrepancy between the amount of electricity generated and/or imported and the amount consumed and/or exported is accounted for as loss in transmission and distribution. [2]
Table 30.2: Total Electricity Consumed [2]
Year 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 Electricity consumption (kilowatt-hours) 435 900 000 435 900 000 454 600 000 473 800 000 302 300 000 297 600 000
227
CIGRE WG C1.9
228
CIGRE WG C1.9
229
CIGRE WG C1.9 Since 2006, Liberias post-war government has been providing emergency power using generators obtained on loan from Ghana to supply power to a few street lights and select public buildings, like hospitals [4]. The Emergency Power Program (EPP) is being funded by Ghana through the Volta River Authority, the Libyan government and Liberias development partners, including the European Union and the US Agency of International Development [4]. The LECs pre-war power system consisted of hydro and thermal generating facilities with a combined installed capacity of 182 MW. Hydro accounted for 64 MW and gas-fired turbines, slow-speed dieselfired plants and medium-speed diesel-fired plants contributed 68 MW, 40 MW and 10 MW respectively. The average annual energy production of these plants stood at 435 GWh, prior to the 1989 war [4]. Meanwhile, the European Commission (EC) has approved 4.8 million contribution to a programme linking three of Liberias border regions to the West African Power Pool (WAPP). Liberia joined the WAPP, a regional power supply group set up in 1999 by West African leaders to tackle the challenge of power supply deficiencies in the Economic Community of West African States region [4].
230
CIGRE WG C1.9
Plans and changes to the electricity industry are dependent on the continued success of the LEC in collection and anti-theft measures. Discipline and control of these two commercial business drivers will determine when, and if, the international financial community is willing to fund further electrification of Liberia [6].
30.8 References
1. Wikipedia. Liberia. URL http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Liberia. Last accessed: 3 September 2009.
231
CIGRE WG C1.9 2. Index Mundi. Liberia Electricity consumption. URL http://www.indexmundi.com/liberia/electricity_consumption.html. Last accessed: 1 September 2009. 3. Nexant Inc. West Africa Regional Transmission Stability Study. Volume 2: Master Plan. URL http://www.ecowapp.org/Volume 2 Master Plan - Final.pdf. Last accessed: 3 September 2009. 4. Engineering News. Liberia studies feasibility of reviving sole hydropower plant. URL http://www.engineeringnews.co.za/article/liberia-studies-feasibility-of-reviving-solehydropower-plant-2008-03-07. Last accessed: 14 September 2009. 5. Wikipedia. Mount Coffee Hydropower Project. URL http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Mount_Coffee_Hydropower_Project Last accessed: 3 September 2009. 6. Rick Whitaker Let there be light: The role of electrification in Liberias post-conflict stabilization. URL http://www.worldenergy.org/documents/p000745.pdf Last accessed: 14 September 2009. 7. eStandardsforum Country brief: Liberia. URL http://www.estandardsforum.org/secure_content/country_profiles/cp_104.pdf Last accessed: 14 September 2009. 8. United Nations Development Programme. First State of the Environment Report for Liberia - 2006. http://www.lr.undp.org/State of the environment report final.pdf Last accessed: 16 September 2009. 9. Volta River Authority. Regional Co-operation. http://www.vra.com/Power/regcop.php Last accessed: 16 September 2009. 10. Final Report West Africa Regional Transmission Stability Study. Volume 2: Master Plan, http://www.ecowapp.org/Volume%202%20Master%20Plan%20-%20Final.pdf]
232
CIGRE WG C1.9
31.
Libya
Libya is one of the important countries in North Africa side of the Mediterranean with a coast of around 2000 km in length. The country area is about 1.76 million km2 with about 6 million inhabitants (2006). Libya is one of the oil exporters in Africa, and natural gas will soon become at the top list of primary energy sources in the country. The power company responsible for generation, transmission and distribution is known as GECOL. Reference: International MESO Symposium Damascus , 1719 June 2008 Power Generation Sector in Libya & Strategic plan GECOL Libya The statistics of the Libyan transmission and distribution systems are as follows:
Table 31.1: System Statistics Libya
233
CIGRE WG C1.9
The generation, energy consumption and electrical demand statistics of the Libyan electricity system are as shown below in Table 31.2:
Table 31.2: Statistical Data Libya 2008
Installed Capacity by Type of Generation (MW) 2008 Thermal Steam Turbines Gas Turbines Combined Cycle Diesel Hydro Renewables Others Total Yearly generation by type (GWh) 2008 Thermal Steam Turbines Gas Turbines Combined Cycle Diesel Hydro Renewables Others Total 28 666 28 666 7 264 1 1519 9 883 6 196 6 196 1 747 2 094 2 355
234
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 31.2 (contd.): Statistical Data Libya 2008
Yearly Consumption (GWh) Residential Commercial Industrial Others Total Consumption per Capita (kWh) Population supplied (%) Population growth (%) Population 2008 (000) Maximum Load (MW) Growth rate (%) Time Date 2008 2007 Exports (GWh) Imports (GWh) Electricity Losses (%) Total Distribution Transmission Generation Transmission Lines (km) 400500 kV 220230 kV 132150 kV Substation Capacities (MVA) 400500 kV 220230 kV 132150 kV 2400 13308 ---442 13 677 ---20.4 7.5 9.7 3.2 7.60 21:30 13 Jul 08 4 756 4 420 117 69 5 222 2 400 3176 7 654 18 452 3 342 99 1.8 5 521
Future Perspectives of the Libyan Power Sector The peak electrical demand in Libya is continuously increasing with a relatively high growth rate of 8% per annum. Accordingly, power generation as well as the transmission network, is also expanding. The fundamental objective of the electrical Master Plan of the Libyan system is to secure and 235
CIGRE WG C1.9 guarantee the electrical power supply to meet the growing demand for electrical energy in all sectors in the country. Recent studies have shown that the peak demand in Libya is expected to reach about 10 000 MW by year 2015 and around 14 000 MW by 2020. Therefore, a total of about 5 500 MW generation capacity needs to be added during the period 20062012 with mixed generation options (Steam & Combined Cycle) using natural gas. In order to transmit the electrical energy generated from the various power plants and to reinforce the local interconnections and interconnections with neighbouring countries (Egypt & Tunisia), the future development plan of the Libyan Transmission System is concentrated on the 400 kV grid. The 400 kV network will be implemented by constructing 20 (400/220 kV) substations and about 5 000 km of 400 kV transmission lines.
236
CIGRE WG C1.9
237
CIGRE WG C1.9 With regard to the capability of lines and transformers, the operational planning units in the national dispatching centres usually do not define different thermal ratings for winter and summer operational conditions, as happens in Europe, but rather for normal and emergency conditions. Moreover, different ratings are defined based on the age of equipment. Generally, for reliability analysis probabilistic approaches or the assessment of the probability of N-1 events during transmission system planning are not considered. Methods used by transmission planners are based on the deterministic approach, and the probabilities of the occurrence of the various events (network failures, generator dispatch, branches availability, etc.) are not taken into consideration. Such approaches can be found only in some studies performed by foreign consulting companies. Load flow computations, static security analysis, short circuit calculations and system stability analysis are carried out during the planning process. Optimal power flows and static/dynamic analyses for post-emergency conditions are also carried out, though not as a routine task. Uncertainties are mostly taken into account using multi-scenario analysis. uncertainties are: the size and location of new power plants, generator availability, load forecasts, and country power balance. The North African power utilities do not have any specific construction criteria for interconnection lines, but commissioning of an interconnection requires a higher hierarchical level of analysis where possible incoherency in planning criteria and system constraints are solved, as well as all aspects related to the engineering issues and co-ordination (e.g.: protection philosophy and relay settings). Considering the complexity of interconnection studies, quite often the prefeasibility and feasibility studies for the different kinds of interconnections (HVAC, HVDC) are performed by foreign consulting companies. The specific economic criteria for interconnection lines are based on difference in electricity prices or on the overall change in system operational costs derived by different interconnection options and different operating regimes of power systems. The planning and operational criteria of Libya are converging towards the criteria adopted in UCTE, in view of a possible extension of the synchronous area with Europe, which at present is limited to Morocco, Algeria and Tunisia. The most important
238
CIGRE WG C1.9 N security conditions The basic assumptions related to the N criterion of the transmission network are: The rating limits of transmission lines should be intended as maximum permanent currents. In normal operating conditions, no overload of the transmission network is allowed. No generator will be above its continuous reactive capability with possible restrictions decided by the planner to account for operational constraints. The loads are represented as constant active and reactive powers. In normal operating conditions a long-term overload of transformers up to 10% of nominal rating is allowed. A short term overload (less than 15 minutes) is allowed up to 20%. For the transmission system generally, unless otherwise specified, the maximum operating voltages are as follows: For 400 kV network maximum voltage is 420 kV. For 220 kV network maximum voltage is 231 kV. For 132 kV network maximum voltage is 145.2 kV. For 90 kV network maximum voltage is 95 kV. For 66 kV network maximum voltage is 72.6 kV. The minimum operating voltages values are as follows: For 400 kV network minimum voltage is 380 kV. For 220 kV network minimum voltage is 209 kV. For 132 kV network minimum voltage is 118.8 kV. For 90 kV network minimum voltage is 85 kV. For 66 kV network minimum voltage is 59.4 kV. Operating Frequency: The nominal frequency is 50 Hz and its permissible variation range under AGC is 50 0.05 Hz. Under normal operating condition the maximum permissible variation range is50 0.2 Hz. N-1 Security Conditions The following criteria are applied under N-1 contingency conditions: The transmission system should be planned such that reasonable and foreseeable contingencies do not result in the loss or unintentional separation of a major portion of the network or in the separation from the regional interconnected system. 239
CIGRE WG C1.9 During contingency conditions, a temporary overload of the transmission lines is allowed up to 10%. A temporary overload of transformers is allowed in emergency conditions up to 20% during peak hours. The maximum post-transient voltage deviation is 10%. For the transmission system generally, unless otherwise specified, the maximum operating voltage values are as follows: For 400 kV network maximum voltage is 440 kV. For 220 kV network maximum voltage is 242 kV. For 132 kV network maximum voltage is 151.8 kV. For 66 kV network maximum voltage is 72.6 kV. The minimum operating voltage values are as follows: For 400 kV network minimum voltage is 360 kV. For 220 kV network minimum voltage is 198 kV. For 132 kV network minimum voltage is 112.2 kV. For 66 kV network minimum voltage is 59.4 kV. Operating frequency: During N-1 contingency conditions, the maximum and minimum permissible frequencies are 50.4 Hz and 49.6 Hz respectively. In the case of a severe incident, the maximum and minimum permissible frequency limits are 52 Hz and 47.5 Hz respectively.
240
CIGRE WG C1.9 Transmission Network Planning Probabilistic Approach The probabilistic approach is seldom used in planning studies directly by the concerned TSOs or VIUs. However, the probabilistic approach is being widely used in interconnection studies among the North African Countries (e.g.: the MEDRING and the ELTAM studies). Unless specific data is provided, the basic assumptions adopted concerning the unavailability of the transmission system, are given in Table 29.4.
Table 31.4: Transmission Line Forced Unavailability Rate
VOLTAGE LEVEL [kV] 500400 220 15090 UNAVAILABILITY RATE [p.u./100 km] 0.005 0.0025 0.005
As no reliability data on the transformers is available, standard hypotheses for these values are assumed. It is assumed that the transformers have an availability of 99.5%. Also records on the reliability of reactors and capacitors are not available, hence standard hypotheses for these values are adopted. More specifically, it is assumed that the reactive compensation equipment has an availability of 99.5%. Three different weather conditions, Normal, Bad and Stormy, are considered and, unless otherwise specified, the parameters used to simulate the weather effects are set out in Table 29.5.
Table 31.5: Parameters of Weather Model
Weather Conditions Hours Ratio [p.u.] Normal Bad Stormy 0.9667 0.03 0.003 Coefficients [p.u.] 1.0 10.0 15.0
As an indicator of the system adequacy, the annual value of Expected Energy Not Supplied (EENS) due to unavailability in the transmission system and/or generation, considering the constraints represented by the transmission capacities of the lines and active power limits of the power plants, is used. A threshold value 10-4 p.u. for the EENS index related to insufficiency of the transmission system due to a reduction in the transmission capacity of the network is assumed.
241
CIGRE WG C1.9 Economic evaluation in transmission-generation planning The price of EENS for an economic evaluation can vary from 0.5US$/kWh up to 2US$/kWh. The generation margins and the loss of load probability adopted for the reliability study are the following: Minimum generation margin reserve: 15%. Loss of load probability (LOLP): one day per three years. Power reserve requirements and criteria Power systems in North Africa are operated with a primary frequency control and a LFC (Load Frequency Control). Primary and Secondary reserves are determined by each operator. The frequency and active power control is provided by the following means: Automatic response from generating units operating in a free governor frequency sensitive mode (Primary Reserve). Automatic Generation Control (AGC) of generating units equipped with automatic load frequency control (Secondary Reserve). To ensure network security in the EEHC and other national systems composing the South-Eastern Mediterranean synchronous pool (Libya, Jordan, Syria, Lebanon), after the most severe outage considered, the total needed Primary Control Reserve is pre-determined at a value of 250 MW composed of 150 MW thermal reserve and 100 MW hydro reserve. As for the Secondary Reserve, there are 20 units of TPP and 10 units of HPP under the AGC. The goal of Secondary Control Reserve is to restore frequency and cross-border exchange to the set values. Hereafter the characteristics of actual operating reserves for power production are reported. They are used as reference values.
Table 31.6: Operational Criteria for Definition of Operating Reserve in Libya
Type of Operating Reserve Primary spinning reserve (within 30 sec) Secondary spinning reserve (within 14.5 minutes): In winter In summer Cold reserve (within 15 minutes) Value MW 250 Comments 100 MW Hydro Generation 150 MW Thermal Generation Hydro-Thermal generation Hydro-Thermal generation Interconnection lines Gas turbines
242
CIGRE WG C1.9
243
CIGRE WG C1.9
244
CIGRE WG C1.9
32.
Madagascar
245
CIGRE WG C1.9 electrification rate is 45% for urban areas and only 5% for rural areas.
In 2007, Henri Fraise Fils & Cie (HFFC) of Antananarivo, Madagascar, was determined to find a way to provide a base load electrical supply for both Mahajanga and Toliara and help curb the energy concerns of the cities. The lack of electricity had a severe impact on business as well as the population.
GWh
246
CIGRE WG C1.9
GWh
Figure 32.2: Electricity consumption for 2000-2011
247
CIGRE WG C1.9
CIGRE WG C1.9
32.3 References
1. www.mbendi.com/a_sndmsg 2. www.estandardsforum.org 3. http://www.cat.com 4. http://www.nabc.nl
249
CIGRE WG C1.9
33.
Malawi
250
CIGRE WG C1.9 The Government of Malawi has undertaken a series of reforms aimed at re-energizing the Electricity Supply Industry. This has involved changing the legislative and regulatory framework aimed at separating the regulatory functions from operations. The oversight role in relation to the ESI will be vested in the Malawi Energy Regulatory Authority (MERA). The MERA is an independent regulator, set up to undertake issues pertaining to licensing and regulating power producers. This is in line with the new Electricity Act, which allows private investors in the electricity market. The Government of Malawi is unbundling ESCOM into three business units, namely Generation, Transmission and Distribution. Ultimately, the Government of Malawi will introduce Private Sector Participation (PSP) in ESCOM. ESCOMs Utility data is summarized in Table 33.1.
Table 33.1: ESCOM Utility Data Malawi
Escom Data Installed capacity MW (2005) Maximum demand MW MD growth % Sales GWh Sales growth % Number of customers Generation sent out GWh Net import GWh Net export GWh Transmission losses % 285 259.67 8 1218 8 172 924 1543 21
251
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 33.2: Maximum Demand Forecast in Malawi
Year Base Case MW 2008 2009 2010 2011 2012 2013 2014 2015 2016 2017 2018 295 324 355 386 423 457 492 528 566 605 646 High Case MW 312 377 440 499 552 597 644 693 744 796 851 Low Case MW 281 284 293 304 322 342 362 383 405 428 453
CIGRE WG C1.9 of the country is linked via a 132 kV backbone transmission system. The 132 kV backbone is planned to meet N-1 contingencies.
2014
ESCOM has continued to participate in all major Southern African Power Pool meetings. However, the Malawi power system is still not interconnected to any of its neighbours. Efforts are being made for an early and most economic realization of the interconnection. The Mozambique-Malawi interconnection would involve building a 220 kV line, of which 120 km will be in Mozambique and 80 km in Malawi, making it the shortest route for the interconnection. ESCOM will use the interconnector to import power during periods of inadequate generation capacity. The line will also be used during times of excess generation capacity to export energy.
253
CIGRE WG C1.9 Zambezi rivers will be capable to deliver adequate flows in the future. This makes the alternative to connect to Mozambiques Cahora-Bassa plant even more feasible.
33.8 References
1. http://allafrica.com/stories/201103010030.html 2. http://www.africanews.com/site/MALAWI_Power_cuts_threaten_lives/list_messages
254
CIGRE WG C1.9
34.
Mali
The company Energie du Mali, (EDM-SA), emerged as the result of the privatization in 2000 of the company with the same corporate name, which had a monopoly on electricity delivery services until then. Subsequent to the privatization, 60% of its capital was controlled by a private consortium (Saur International and the IPS/WA group, a subsidiary of the Aga Khan Development Fund) and 40% by the Malian state. The capital structure changed in October 2005, following the withdrawal of Saur International, to 66.6% for the state and 33.3% for IPS/WA group. EDM-SA is granted a twenty year contract for the generation, transmission and distribution, as well as managing electricity marketing and purchase within the boundaries of 97 community areas. The company Eskom Energie Manantali (EEM-SA), enjoys an exploitation contract for the Manantali 200 MW hydro-electric power station and the 225 kV power line linking Mali, Senegal and Mauritania. These facilities were realized under the aegis of the Organisation de la Mise en Valeur du Fleuve Sngal (OMVS), of which Mali, Mauritania and Senegal are members. An agreement between the states defines the sharing of power generated at Manantali among the three countries: 52% to Mali, 33% to Senegal and 15% to Mauritania. Annual power generation is limited to an average of 807 GWh. The companies Socts de Services Dcentraliss, (SSD) of the Senegal River zone and the cotton plant zone were created in 1999 and 2000 and are in charge of rural electrification. There are
CIGRE C1.9 AFRICA STUDY REPORT
255
CIGRE WG C1.9 self-producers such as the sugar refineries with 7 MW, Compagnie Malienne du Dveloppement du Textile (CMDT) with 8 MW and the Socit Huilerie Cotonnerie du Mali (HUICOMA) with 4.5 MW [1], [2], [3], [4]. The electrical system of Mali consists of two subsets known as operating centres which are [1, 2, 3]: The Interconnected Network (IN) operating centre which is composed of Darsalam and Balingu thermal generation plants of Bamako and the hydro-electric power plants of Selingue, Sotuba and Felou. Malis quota in the generation from Manantali hydro-electric power plants (owned by SOGEM-OMVS) is also injected into the interconnected network. This network gives power to the city of Bamako which is the biggest consumer, those of Segou and Markala (in the north-east of Bamako) and the towns of Kita, Koulikoro, Fana and Kayes in the northwest of Bamako. The Isolated Stations (IS), of EDM-SA consist of nineteen new community areas outside the interconnected system, which are serviced with diesel generators or from the cross-border MV network of Cte dIvoire. The major towns comprising the isolated centres are Koutiala, Sikasso, Mopti, Gao, Tombouctou, etc. The National Water and Energy Directorate (DNHE) is Malis primary governmental institution for implementing national energy policy, regulating the energy sector and the planning of large energy and water projects. It oversees various projects such as the National Program for the Promotion of Butane Gas, the Special Energy Program (PSE) and the Domestic Energy Project, and supervises the operations of a number of entities, including some of those listed in the following table (regional or national research and development organizations are listed in the organizations section) [8]. Table 34.1 shows the government energy organizations and the activities for which they are responsible.
Table 34.1: Government Energy Organizations Mali
Organization National Water and Energy Directorate (DNHE), (National Energy Directorate, energy board within the DNHE) Energy Mali (EDM) National electricity company National Center for Solar and Renewable Energies (CNESOLER) National Advisory Committee for Improved Stoves (CNCFA) Activity Implementation and regulation of national energy policy and planning of energy/water projects Production of electricity and its distribution, support for development of new energy generation projects R&D and promotion of RE
256
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 34.1 (contd.): Government Energy Organizations Mali
National Directorate for Rivers and Forests (DNEF), part of the Ministry of Rural Development and the Environment National Directorate of Agriculture (DNA), part of the Ministry of Rural Development and the Environment Planned: creation of a National Energy Committee (CNE) Controls exploitation of forest resources, including the production of wood-fuel and charcoal Biogas research and production
The Government of Malis energy policy aims to ensure the provision of electricity to as much of the population as possible, and is based on: a substantial improvement in the effectiveness and productivity of the sector, the disengagement of the state from the operational activities of the electricity industry, and the broadest participation and fastest distribution to the deprived sector of Mali with these activities. Moreover, on a regional scale, Mali is a member of the Economic Community of West African States (ECOWAS), and has therefore participated, along with other members of ECOWAS, in the signing of the West African Power Pool (WAPP) agreement in October 2000, which reaffirmed the decision to develop energy production facilities and interconnect their respective electricity grids. Mali, along with countries such as Guinea, Guinea-Bissau, Liberia, Senegal, Gambia and Cape Verde, will actively be involved in the second phase of the WAPP agreement. Under the agreement, the WAPP is expected to harmonize the regulatory framework that governs the electricity sector in each member country. Malis electricity production in 2002 was 700 million kWh and its electricity consumption in 2002 was 651 million kWh. Hydroelectric power is responsible for generating about 60% of electricity. Much of the remainder is generated by oil. Two dams; the Selingue and Manantali provide 98% of the hydropower. In mid 2001, Eskom of South Africa was awarded an $85 million contract to operate and maintain the Manantali hydro station for 15 years. The 200 MW power station also supplies power to Senegal and Mauritania. Hydropower only provides 1% of the energy requirement while charcoal and firewood supply 90%. The use of charcoal as a source of energy is a main cause of deforestation, soil erosion and desertification. EDM is responsible for generating and transmitting most of the electricity. The state owed utility company Electricite du Mali also provides electricity. The electrification rate is 15% and power shortages and interruptions are common [11].
257
CIGRE WG C1.9
Two expansion scenarios are considered. The first is with 50% autonomy factors for energy trade in MWh and trade of reserves in MW. The second scenario is one of full autonomy with energy and power autonomy factors both set at 100%. Table 34.3 shows the installed capacity of existing and proposed power stations [5]. Tables 34.4 and 34.5 show total electricity production and installed production capacity [6] shows electricity consumption [7].
Table 34.3: Existing and Proposed Power Stations
Station Name Darsalam 1 Darsalam 2 Balingue Sotuba Selingue Manantali Gouina Felou Petit Kenie Markala Installed Capacity (MW) 10.0 20.0 18.0 5.4 44.0 200.0 104.0 105.0 56.0 5.2
258
CIGRE WG C1.9
259
CIGRE WG C1.9 241.72 GWH from hydro-power generation. Local purchases from SOGEM (OMVS) and cross border imports from Cte dIvoire were 399.80 GWh and 1.93 GWh respectively. The quota of the stations operated by EDMSA was 50.08% of the total gross output while energy purchases amounted to 49.92%. Figure 34.3 shows the evolution of gross generation of EDM-SA from 2002 to 2005 [1].
The gross generation (EDM-SA + energy purchases) of the interconnected network (IN) in 2005 was 711.1 GWh compared with 639.8 GWh in 2004, which is an 11.3 % increase. The major part of the generation was obtained from the IN network, i.e. 88.37% of the overall gross generation. Figure 34.4 shows the distribution of EDM-SA production by source and operation centre.
260
CIGRE WG C1.9 The hydro-electric power stations of EDM-SA and Manantali (SOGEM) accounted for 80% of the gross generation. The thermal stations of EDM-SA and imports from CIE (which are negligible) accounted for the remaining 20%. Figure 34.5 shows the distribution of gross generation by type of station.
261
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 34.6: Efficiency of the Interconnected Network
2004 Overall gross generation of IN (GWh) Net generation of IN (GWh) Energy delivered to distribution network of IN (GWh) Energy sold on the IN (GWh) 639.146 634.346 619.829 476.580 2005 711.051 706.731 690.439 541.813
262
CIGRE WG C1.9
263
CIGRE WG C1.9 Component 2: Energy efficiency and demand side management (US$ 5.0 million). The key objective of this component is to address the countrys energy security needs through the implementation of energy efficiency measures across various supply and demand side sectors. The implementation of this initiative is expected to reduce energy consumption and peak load demand, bringing direct benefits to households and other consumers (through lowered electricity bills) and the government (through deferred investment in electricity generation for new capacity and enhanced energy security). Furthermore, actions implemented under this initiative are expected to reduce local pollution and global GHG emissions. Component 3: Capacity and institutional strengthening of key sector institutions (US$8.0 million). Experience in the area of energy sector reform over the last five years indicates that more work is needed to strengthen the institutional, legal and regulatory environment and governance to foster an open and predictable business environment attractive to private investors and operators. This component is intended mainly to help restructuring efforts of EDM-SA by setting a minimum platform of technical and financial performance targets with monitoring indicators.
34.8 References
1. 2005 Performance indicators of WAPP member utilities power systems; May 2007. 2. http://www.mbendi.co.za/indy/powr/af/ml/p0005.htm 3. http://www.energyrecipes.org/reports/genericData/Africa/061129%20RECIPES%20countr y%20info%20Mali.pdf 4. http://www.globalregulatorynetwork.org/Resources/2ndGRN/Images/Session%202%20%20Tshibingu.pdf 5. http://www.purdue.edu/discoverypark/energy/pdfs/wafrica/Mali.pdf 6. http://www.iaea.org/inisnkm/nkm/aws/eedrb/data/ML-elic.html 7. http://www.indexmundi.com/g/g.aspx?c=ml&v=81 8. http://www.areed.org/country/mali/mali.pdf
264
CIGRE WG C1.9
9. http://www.energyrecipes.org/reports/genericData/Africa/061129%20RECIPES%20country%20info%20 Mali.pdf
265
CIGRE WG C1.9
35.
Mauritania
266
CIGRE WG C1.9
GWh
Figure 35.1: Electricity production between 2000-2011
GWh
Figure 35.2: Electricity consumption between 2000-2011
267
CIGRE WG C1.9 Mauritania (Nouakchott) and Senegal (Dakar). This development initiative supplies electricity to the grids of Mali, Mauritania, as well as Senegal. The project has also allowed for the construction of a single-circuit, 100 km long, transmission line connecting Kaedi to Boghe, and having an exchange capacity of 24 MW. This included the expansion of the 90 kV Kaedi substation, the supply and installation of the overhead lines, cables, switchgear, protection and control equipment. All of which was necessary to reinforce the system and connect the substations at Kaedi, Boghe and Rosso with the corresponding 15 kV SOMELEC power generating stations in these three towns in Mauritania. [1]
268
CIGRE WG C1.9 foreign debt. In February 2000, Mauritania qualified for debt relief under the Heavily Indebted Poor Countries (HIPC) initiative and nearly all of its foreign debt has since been forgiven. A new investment code approved in December 2001 improved the opportunities for direct foreign investment. Mauritania and the IMF agreed to a three-year Poverty Reduction and Growth Facility (PRGF) arrangement in 2006. Mauritania made satisfactory progress, but the IMF, World Bank, and other international actors suspended assistance and investment in Mauritania after the August 2008 coup. Since the presidential election in July 2009, donors have resumed assistance. Oil prospects, while initially promising, have largely failed to materialize, and the government has placed a priority on attracting private investment to spur economic growth. The Government also emphasizes reduction of poverty, improvement of health and education, and privatization of the economy. Economic growth remained above 5% in 2010-11, mostly because of rising prices of gold, copper, iron ore, and oil.
35.9 References
1. www.mbendi.com 2. CIA World Factbook 3. http://www.energyrecipes.org/reports/genericData/Africa/061129%20RECIPES%20country%2 0info%20Mauritania.pdf 4. https://www.cia.gov/library/publications/the-world-factbook/geos/mr.html#top
269
CIGRE WG C1.9
36.
Mauritius
270
CIGRE WG C1.9
The electricity sales have grown by 625% in the years from 1976, while GDP has grown by less than half that amount, 275%, over the same period.
271
CIGRE WG C1.9 The government of Mauritius committed itself in October 2001 to: Restructure the electricity sector by corporatizing the CEB as a vertically-integrated utility (VIU), Setting up an independent, multi-sectoral regulator for the electricity industry and, Inviting a strategic partner to assist in the management of the CEB.
272
CIGRE WG C1.9 The forecast electricity sales by customer category is shown in Figure 36.3
The forecast peak electricity demand and energy forecasts are shown in Figures 36.4 and 36.5 respectively.
Under the probable forecast, capacity requirements to meet peak demand will grow from 319 MW in 2002 to 484 MW in 2012. This represents an average increase of 17 MW per year over the next ten years, or an average cumulative annual increase 4.3%.
273
CIGRE WG C1.9
Under the probable forecast, Energy generation requirements will increase from 1 715 GWh in 2002 to 2 727 GWh in 2012. This is equivalent to an average cumulative annual growth rate of 4.8% over the ten-year planning horizon
274
CIGRE WG C1.9
Kerosene 3%
Hydro
Coal
Bagasse
Fuel oil
Kerosene
275
CIGRE WG C1.9
276
CIGRE WG C1.9
New resources are needed to meet the projected energy demand in 2008 if CEB is to avoid extensive use of higher-cost generating units. The peak demand forecasts include an allowance for spinning and system reserve margins.
277
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 36.9: Effective Capacity Balance with Existing and Committed Resources
278
CIGRE WG C1.9
279
CIGRE WG C1.9 states and some degree of automation of the switching points in the distribution network. As the system expands, these issues would become more pressing. Inherently the (N-1) security criterion is used in planning the network such that no single element failure will result in loss of supply. This ensures a fundamental measure against system collapse. There is no defined methodology to evaluate the costs of a blackout, but it is recognized that such an event represents a major loss in economic activities for the country and a reduction in sales revenue for the utility. Presently, power system analysis software is the main tool used to simulate contingencies and to take measures to remedy such system weaknesses. CEB is now re-structuring its organizational processes to address these issues and a request for proposals for consultancy services to conduct a power system study has been launched recently. The system is too small to contemplate system islanding although the power stations have the capability to switch to islanding mode. Currently, the practice has been to implement an automatic load shedding scheme in case of the loss of a major generation group for which spinning reserve margin is not sufficient at that instant. The system consists of single bus-bar substations with bus couplers, linked by double circuit overhead lines in a meshed configuration. The bus couplers are normally closed. Details of the system are described in our Integrated Electricity Plan available at www.ceb.intnet.mu. In the past many cogeneration plants at sugar mills were connected to the 22 kV distribution network. With the centralization of the sugar industry this has been reduced to one plant only. Normally, the network infrastructure requirements are only assessed and planned after the project is submitted by the proposer and approved. As part of its country assistance programme, UNDP has launched a request for proposals for consultancy services to develop a Grid Code for integrating distributed renewable energy sources particularly on the low-voltage networks. In this respect, issues such as safety, protection, power quality and others would be addressed by the Grid Code. Voltage stability is not an issue in the CEBs system as the generation plants are evenly located around the island and transmission of power is not done over long distances. Reactive power forecasting is based on analysis carried out on actual load flows and it is also related to the active power demand forecast.
280
CIGRE WG C1.9 Load models are voltage dependent and the values of active and reactive powers are taken from the actual SCADA recordings. Reactive power compensation is done by the automatic switching of capacitor banks located at the 22 kV bus-bars in the main bulk supply substations.
281
CIGRE WG C1.9
37.
Morocco
282
CIGRE WG C1.9
Statistical data for the Morocco electricity system are shown in Table 37.1:
Table 37.1: Statistical Data for Morocco 2008
Installed Capacity by Type of Generation (MW) 2008 Thermal Steam Turbines Gas Turbines Combined Cycle Diesel Hydro Renewables Others Total 5 292 3 380 2 385 615 380 69 1 729 114
283
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 37.1 (contd.): Statistical Data for Morocco 2008
Yearly Generation by Type (GWh) 2008 Thermal Steam Turbines Gas Turbines Combined Cycle Diesel Hydro Renewables Others Total Yearly Consumption (GWh) Residential Commercial Industrial Others Total Consumption per Capita (kWh) Population supplied (%) Population growth (%) Population 2008 (000) Maximum Load (MW) Growth rate (%) Time Date 2008 2007 Exports (GWh) imports (GWh) Electricity Losses (%) Total Distribution Transmission Generation n:d n:d 4.7 n:d 5.00 21:45 1 Jul 08 4180 3980 149 4411 3 196 1170 5375 1 1970 21 711 697 95 1.1 31 170 20 307 18 591 14 985 739 2 867 58 1 360 298
284
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 37.1 (contd.): Statistical Data for Morocco 2008
Transmission Lines (Km) 400500 kV 220230 kV 132150 kV Substation Capacities (MVA) 400500 kV 220230 kV 132150 kV 2 840 11 570 610 1 284 7 607 144
285
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 37.4: Number of Customers in Morocco Table 37.2: Demand and Generation Forecast in Morocco
Electricity Forecast 2018 Demand Max (MW) Generation (GWh) 2013 Demand Max (MW) Generation (GWh) 2009 Demand Max (MW) Generation (GWh) 7 362 4 4002 5 255 31 373 4 089 24 693
286
CIGRE WG C1.9
287
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 37.3: Morocco Generation Projects
The main technical criteria for transmission system development is the N-1 security criterion, which is applied everywhere. It refers to the loss of single circuit, transformer or generator, when after the occurrence of a fault event the following consequences are to be avoided: thermal overloading of branches, voltage deviations above permitted range, loss of stability, loss of load, interruption of power transits, and disturbance spreading over power system. The N-2 criterion is not applied. With regard to the security margins, some restrictions are imposed on the generating unit capability limits, specifically on the Qmax and Qmin limits. With regard to the capability of lines and transformers, the operational planning units in the national dispatching centres usually do not define different thermal ratings for winter and summer operational conditions, as happens in Europe, but rather for normal and emergency conditions. Moreover, different ratings are defined based on the age of equipment.
288
CIGRE WG C1.9 For reliability analysis probabilistic approaches or the assessment of the probability of N-1 events during transmission system planning are not considered. Methods used by transmission planners are based on the deterministic approach and the probabilities of the occurrence of the various events (network failures, generator dispatch, circuit availability, etc.) are not taken into consideration. Such approaches can be found only in some studies performed by foreign consulting companies. Morocco performs load flow computations, static security analysis, short circuit calculations and system stability analysis during the planning process. Uncertainties are mostly taken into account using multi-scenario analyses. The most important uncertainties are: the size and location of new power plants, generator availability, load forecasts, and country power balance. The North African power utilities do not have any specific construction criteria for interconnection lines, but commissioning of an interconnection requires a higher hierarchical level of analysis where possible incoherency in planning criteria and system constraints are solved, as well as all aspects related to the engineering issues and co-ordination (e.g.: protection philosophy and relay settings). Considering the complexity of interconnection studies, the pre-feasibility and feasibility studies for the different kinds of interconnections (HVAC, HVDC) are frequently performed by foreign consulting companies. The specific economic criteria for interconnection lines are based on difference in electricity prices or on the overall change in system operational costs derived by different interconnection options and different operating regimes of power systems. N Security Conditions The basic assumptions related to the N criterion of the transmission network are: The rating limits of transmission lines should be intended as maximum permanent currents. In normal operating conditions, no overload of the transmission network is allowed. No generator will be above its continuous reactive capability with possible restrictions decided by the planner to account for operational constraints. The loads are represented as constant active and reactive powers. In normal operating conditions a long-term overload of transformers up to 10% of nominal rating is allowed. A short term overload (less than 15 minutes) is allowed up to 20%.
289
CIGRE WG C1.9 For the transmission system generally, unless otherwise specified, the maximum operating voltages are as follows: For 400 kV network maximum voltage is 420 kV. For 220 kV network maximum voltage is 231 kV. For 150 kV network maximum voltage is 158 kV. For 132 kV network maximum voltage is 139 kV. For 90 kV network maximum voltage is 95 kV. For 66 kV network maximum voltage is 72.6 kV. The minimum operating voltages values are as follows: For 400 kV network minimum voltage is 374.8 kV. For 220 kV network minimum voltage is 209 kV. For 150 kV network minimum voltage is 142 kV. For 132 kV network minimum voltage is 125 kV. For 90 kV network minimum voltage is 85 kV. For 66 kV network minimum voltage is 59.4 kV. Operating Frequency: The nominal frequency is 50 Hz and its permissible variation range under AGC is 50 0.05 Hz. Under normal operating condition the maximum permissible variation range is 50 0.2 Hz. N-1 Security Conditions The following criteria are applied under N-1 contingency conditions: The transmission system should be planned such that reasonable and foreseeable contingencies do not result in the loss or unintentional separation of a major portion of the network or in the separation from the regional interconnected system. During contingency conditions, a temporary overload of the transmission lines is allowed up to 10%. A temporary overload of transformers is allowed in emergency conditions up to 20% during peak hours. The maximum post-transient voltage deviation is 10%. For transmission system generally, unless otherwise specified, the maximum operating voltage values are as follows:
290
CIGRE WG C1.9 For 400 kV network maximum voltage is 420 kV. For 220 kV network maximum voltage is 242 kV. For 132 kV network maximum voltage is 145.2 kV. For 66 kV network maximum voltage is 72.6 kV. The minimum operating voltage values are as follows: For 400 kV network minimum voltage is 360 kV. For 220 kV network minimum voltage is 198 kV. For 132 kV network minimum voltage is 118.8 kV. For 66 kV network minimum voltage is 59.4 kV. Operating range frequency: During N-1 contingency conditions, the maximum and minimum permissible frequencies are 50.4 Hz and 49.6 Hz respectively. In the case of a severe incident, the maximum and minimum permissible frequency limits are 52 Hz and 47.5 Hz respectively. Transmission Network Planning Probabilistic Approach The probabilistic approach is seldom used in planning studies directly by the concerned transmission service operators (TSOs) or vertically integrated undertakings (VIUs). However, the probabilistic approach is being widely used in interconnection studies among the North African Countries (e.g.: the MEDRING and the ELTAM studies). Unless specific data is provided, the basic assumptions adopted concerning the unavailability of the transmission system, are given in Table 35.4.
Table 37.4: Transmission Line Forced Unavailability Rate
VOLTAGE LEVEL [kV] 500400 220 15090 UNAVAILABILITY RATE [p.u./100 km] 0.005 0.0025 0.005
As no reliability data on the transformers is available, standard hypotheses for these values are assumed. It is assumed that the transformers have an availability of 99.5%. Also records on the reliability of reactors and capacitors are not available, hence standard hypotheses 291
CIGRE WG C1.9 for these values are adopted. More specifically, it is assumed that the reactive compensation equipment has an availability of 99.5%. Three different weather conditions, Normal, Bad and Stormy, are considered and, unless otherwise specified, the parameters used to simulate the weather effects are set out in the following table:
Table 37.5: Parameters of Weather Model
Weather Conditions Hours Ratio [p.u.] Normal Bad Stormy 0.9667 0.03 0.003 Coefficients [p.u.] 1.0 10.0 15.0
As an indicator of the system adequacy, the annual value of Expected Energy Not Supplied (EENS) due to unavailability in the transmission system and/or generation considering the constraints represented by the transport capacities of the lines and active power limits of the power plants is used. A threshold value 10-4 p.u. for the EENS index related to insufficiency of the transmission system due to a reduction in the transmission capacity of the network is assumed. Economic evaluation in transmission-generation planning The price of EENS for an economic evaluation can vary from 0.5USD/kWh up to 2USD/kWh. The generation margins and the loss of load probability adopted for the reliability study are the following: Minimum generation margin reserve: 15%. Loss of load probability (LOLP): 524 hrs/year. The highest value is valid whenever the systems are operated in islanded mode. Power reserve requirements and criteria Power systems in North Africa are operated with a primary frequency control and a load frequency control (LFC). Primary and Secondary reserves are determined by each operator.
292
CIGRE WG C1.9 The frequency and active power control is provided by the following means: Automatic response from generating units operating in a free governor frequency sensitive mode (Primary Reserve). Automatic Generation Control (AGC) of generating units equipped with automatic load frequency control (Secondary Reserve).
293
CIGRE WG C1.9
37.8 References
1. http://www.mbendi.com/indy/powr/af/mo/p0005.htm 2. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Education_in_Morocco
294
CIGRE WG C1.9
38.
Mozambique
295
CIGRE WG C1.9 Hidroelectrica de Cahora Bassa, is the company that manages and operates the Cahora Bassa Hydro Electric Power Stations and the associated transmission network to the Southern African Power Pool, and MoTraCo is a joint venture between the power utilities of Mozambique, South Africa and Swaziland formulated to transport power from South Africa to the Mozal plant in Maputo. The Ministry of Mineral Resources and Energy (MIREME) is responsible for policy formulation within the mineral resources and energy sectors of the economy. In the energy sector, it supervises the activities of the two directorates, viz: National Coal and Hydrocarbon Directorate (DNCH), and Direccao Nacional de Energia (DNE) through which government policies and programmes are implemented. The structure of the energy sector is presented in Figure 38.1. An Energy Fund (FUNAE) has also been established under MIREME, responsible for: Mobilization of resources and implementation of various low cost energy supply schemes to rural and urban areas populated by low income groups, and Promotion of energy conservation and sustainable management of energy resources.
MIREME
Council of Ministers
MPF
DNE
Imports
SAPP
296
CIGRE WG C1.9 Private investment is being actively promoted in the generation, transmission and distribution businesses. Future investment in generation will mainly be developed through an Independent Power Producer (IPP). The Government of Mozambique has created a Technical Unit (UTIP) to promote the development of major hydropower projects (Cahora Bassa North and Mepanda Uncua power projects). Reforms will involve restructuring EdM operations into separate transmission and distribution businesses, and the establishment of an Independent Regulator with a view to attracting private investment in the sector. EdM has approximately 250 000 customers connected to its grid with 50% of the customers in Maputo.
297
CIGRE WG C1.9
298
CIGRE WG C1.9
299
CIGRE WG C1.9
CIGRE WG C1.9 African energy regulator Nersa and the Departments of Energy and Public Enterprises. It will be fuelled by gas from Sasol's Temane gas field and will service Eskom and its Mozambican counterpart, Electricidade de Moambique (EDM). It will be located in Ressano Garcia as it is in close proximity to the existing Sasol gas pipeline, which runs from northern Mozambique through to South Africa, as well as a 275 kV transmission corridor. In addition, Aggreko will install containerised power generation units, which will be shipped in from Dumbarton in Scotland, and build gas interconnections, a substation, and a 1.5 km 275 kV transmission line to the main network. This infrastructure will remain intact once the installation is dismantled. Power purchase agreements have been signed by both utilities and Eskom will utilise 92 megawatts of the available capacity, while EDM will use 15. The joint venture is expected to bring in revenues of about US$250-million over its operational period, which should begin in October and carry on until July 2014. Eskom is planning to use the power to bolster its base-load capacity ahead of the introduction of new generation capacity from the Medupi coal-fired power station, which is scheduled to begin operating towards the end of 2013. EDM has contracted with the facility to meet its daily peak demand. The project is expected to complement other alternative energy initiatives South Africa is embarking on, including a 100 MW concentrated solar power plant in Upington in the Northern Cape, as well as a 100 MW wind power project in Sere, outside Cape Town. Eskom is also currently building two major coal-fired power stations, Medupi and Kusile, in Limpopo and Mpumalanga respectively. But until the completion of the stations, South Africa's high energy demands are expected to continue to threaten the country's supply. It is hoped that with the agreement this week, both South Africa and Mozambique will get muchneeded additional power, with the project also underlining the importance of the two countries as energy hubs for the entire southern African region. According to Aggreko's chief executive, Rupert Soames, the contract was not only important for South Africa and Mozambique but for southern Africa as a whole. "We also hope this project will be an example for other countries seeking to optimise their resources and manage the supply of regional power." The companies envisage employment and training of about 100 locals with the procurement process 301
Source: BuaNews
302
CIGRE WG C1.9 The major power project donors are: The Norwegian, Swedish and Danish Government Aid Agencies (NORAD, SIDA and DANIDA), The French Agency for Development, World Bank, and African Development Bank (ADB).
303
CIGRE WG C1.9
38.8 References:
1. http://www.energyrecipes.org/reports/genericData/Africa/061129%20RECIPES%20countr y%20info%20Mozambique.pdf 2. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Economy_of_Mozambique 3. http://www.southafrica.info/business/economy/infrastructure/gas-power080612.htm#ixzz24s7OPfIK
304
CIGRE WG C1.9
39.
Namibia
305
CIGRE WG C1.9
Structures Generation In Namibia, electricity is generated and transmitted by NamPower. The power utility also supplies power to all transmission customers such as the mines and large industries. The three existing power generating plants in Namibia are: Ruacana hydro power station This power station is located in the North on the borders between the Namibia and Angola near the Ruacana falls. The power station was commissioned in 1978. The water from the Kunene River is used to generate 240 MW from three turbines. A fourth unit is being installed and it is expected to generate 90 MW by March 2012. Van Eck coal power station Installed in 1972, this power station is situated in the northern industrial area of Windhoek (the capital city). The power station has four units with a total capacity of 120 MW. Paratus diesel power station This diesel power station was commissioned in 1976 in Walvis Bay. It has four units generating 4.6 MW each. The power station is mainly used as a standby station for the coastal 306
CIGRE WG C1.9 areas. The Anixas power station will be constructed adjacent to the Paratus power station in Walvis Bay. This diesel fuelled power station will have a capacity of 21.5 MW and it will be commissioned at the end of 2010. Proposed power generation projects being investigated: Kudu Gas. Bynes. Epupa. Orange River Hydro Power. Popa Falls. Luderitz wind. Walvis coal . Transmission. All the transmission lines are monitored and maintained by NamPower. The AC transmission voltage levels are 400 kV, 330 kV, 220 kV, 132 kV and 66 kV. The DC Caprivi Link Interconnector will be commissioned in 2010. The Caprivi Link Interconnector is a 970 km long 350 kV HVDC bipolar line that has been constructed recently between Zambezi and Gerus substations. It is aimed to provide an asynchronous link between the Namibian, Zambian and Zimbabwean grids. This will ensure a reliable power transfer capability between the east and the west of the SAPP. The project has two phases with the first phase due for completion in 2010, while phase two will involve installing a 400 kV AC line between Gerus and Auas substations. [3]
307
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 39.2: Overview of the Namibian Grid with the Caprivi Link Interconnector
Distribution. The distribution lines make up most of the national grid. The voltage levels are 33 kV, 22 kV, 19 kV single wire earth return (SWER) and 11 kV. Most of these lines are owned by the respective REDs, with the exceptions of the Central and Southern regions which belong to NamPower. The future plan of the electricity industry reforms Listed below are the future plans of the electricity industry reforms: The un-bundling of distribution networks (formation of REDs). So far three REDs have been formed (NORED, Erongo RED and CENORED) and the other two (Central RED and Southern RED) are yet to be implemented. Independent power producers (IPPs) Various companies are interested in becoming IPPs in Namibia; and a wind energy development has already obtained a generating licence from the ECB. The IPPs will sell power to NamPower.
308
CIGRE WG C1.9 Single buyer At the moment, NamPower operates as a single buyer. The government through the ECB, is reviewing the single buyer model. Listed below are the two suggestions under review concerning energy trading: Energy trading to be an entity on its own Modified single buyer. This option suggests that various independent power generating companies would sell power to large customers (i.e. mines; cities and factories) and export to neighbouring countries. Grid codes and roles The Namibian grid code is drawn up by appointed experts, the grid code advisory committee, which makes recommendations for approval by the Ministry of Mines and Energy. The ECB acts as the administrative authority for the Grid Code ensuring that the Grid Code is compiled, approved and implemented for the benefit of the industry. The grid code participants are generating sections, transmission, distributors, system operators, single buyers and transmission customers. [4] The grid code has six documents namely: (i) The Governance code. This document consists of guidelines on how to update the grid code. The document has procedures on the version controls, amendments and exemption processes. (ii) The Preamble This document provides the background for the grid code and its various sub-sections. It contains detailed definitions of terms, acronyms and abbreviations used in the grid code documents. The document also provides an overall definition for the electricity industry structure. (iii) The Network code This code contains a set of connection conditions for generators, distributors and enduse customers. The document also stipulates the standards used to plan and develop the transmission system i. The Metering code This code enforces metering standards and requirements that should be adhered to. The
309
CIGRE WG C1.9 document has guidelines on metering databases, data validation and verification, testing of metering installations and confidentiality on metering data. ii. The System Operation code This code sets out the operational tasks and roles for the participants of the Interconnected Power System (IPS). The code also provides guidelines for normal operating procedures, voltage control, commissioning, emergency and contingency planning and outage planning for the grid. iii. The Information Exchange code This code defines the responsibilities of parties with regard to the provision of information for the implementation of the grid code. The information requirements as defined for the service-providers, the ECB and customers are necessary to ensure nondiscriminatory access to the transmission system and the safe, reliable provision of transmission services. The information requirements are divided into planning
CIGRE WG C1.9
Load forecasting Approach and Methodology A relational analysis is used to predict the future annual maximum demand for the various load points as accurately as possible. Historical load data is used as the main input to the model to determine future trends for every load point in the network. Load data for closed down industries and mines is removed from the historical load data. New development loads and step loads as specified by customers are added to the forecasted load to determine future load. This model is a worst-case scenario such that future peak load that may occur is expected to be lower than the forecasted load for that specific year. Step loads as specified by customers are added to the forecasted load to determine future load. Three forecast models were constructed to cater for the varying probabilities (low, medium and high) of new step loads that may materialize within the next five years. The three load forecast models are referred to as; High Probability/Low growth (only high probability step loads are taken into account), Medium Probability/Medium growth (high and medium probability step loads are taken into account), and Low Probability/High growth (all probable step loads are taken into account). From a system planners perspective, the High Probability/Low Growth model is the preferred forecast model for use in Transmission Master Plan studies [5]. Demand forecasts are used in transmission planning while demand and energy forecasts are used for integrated resource planning (IRP) and financial planning.
311
CIGRE WG C1.9
Demand Forecast Scenarios
2 000
1 800
The daily load forecast The daily forecast is compiled on a daily basis by the Energy Trading business unit. This forecast looks at the networks aggregated demand in order to predict the following days demand. The forecast results are used by the energy traders to optimize the available supply options in order to meet the foreseen demand. The forecast depends on historic data and on the factors listed below: Weather conditions (Season). Day type (working day/holiday/weekend). Major maintenance on the network. Major step loads coming onto the system on that day. The load forecast is prepared by using the bottom-up method at feeder and substation level. Diversity factors are applied to applicable feeders so that all loads on the transmission and distribution networks are scaled according to their maximum demand of the previous year. Load diversification ensures that transmission and distribution loads are forecasted on the same level. NamPower maintains communication with the REDs to keep track of the changing customer load density. The REDs communicate with the supply business section of NamPower regarding their latest customer additions. The Namibian grid has no dispersed generation.
312
CIGRE WG C1.9
313
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 39.1: Voltage Conditions
System Voltage Conditions Minimum steady state voltage on any bus not supplying a customer Maximum harmonic voltage caused by customer at point of common coupling Maximum negative sequence voltage caused by customer at point of common coupling System healthy After contingency Individual harmonic Total harmonics Continuous single-phase load connected phase-to-phase: Multiple, continuously varying, singlephase loads: Voltage Level 0.95 UN 0.90 UN 0.01 UN 0.03 UN 0.01 UN 0.03 UN (4.5Log10N) % of UN 0.05 UN
Maximum voltage decrease for a 5% load increase at receiving end of system (without adjustment):
UN= Nominal continuous operating voltage on any bus for which equipment is designed UM = Maximum continuous voltage on any bus for which equipment is designed
The following are the technical limits and targets that are required for planning purposes: [7] Voltage limits. The table below shows all target voltages that are applicable for planning purposes: Transmission Lines. Lines will not be operated above their thermal ratings under normal conditions. Transformers. Transformer ratings are determined by the manufacturer. Transformers will not be operated above their thermal ratings under normal conditions. Series Capacitors Installation of a series capacitor will depend on: o The systems maximum steady state current. o The IEC 143 Standards on cyclic overload capabilities. o The duration of the contingency with the required overload capability. Shunt Reactive Compensation Shunt capacitors shall be capable of operating at 30% above their nominal rated current at UN to allow for harmonics and voltages up to UM.
314
CIGRE WG C1.9 Circuit Breakers The following breaker limits shall not be exceeded: o Single-phase breaking current: o Peak making current: current o Secondary ARC current during single phase reclosing In any part of the network, the secondary ARC current shall not exceed the following limits: o 20 amps rms. with recovery voltage of 0.4 p.u. o 40 amps rms. with recovery voltage of 0.25 p.u. The power quality standards of the Namibian grid are based on the NRS048-1, 2, 3, 4, 5 Standards. Currently, NamPower only monitors the power quality of the grid. Impedographs are used at all substations with voltage levels of 33 kV and below (interface between NamPower transmission and its local customers) and at tie lines (these are points connecting to neighbouring countries on the transmission levels) to continuously monitor the power quality. NamPower actively manages the power quality levels of the national grid on a daily basis. 1.15 times three-phase fault current 2.55 times three-phase rms. fault
CIGRE WG C1.9 General Grid System Planning The general grid system planning is performed by the System Planning section. A 5-years-ahead master plan document is written every year which sets out plans to expand the transmission network. The master plan does not only cater for the next five years but also looks into long term system performance. This document includes load forecasts and load flow studies to predict future conditions. Suggestions are made on how to deal with future problems that may occur on the network. Technical input from stakeholders within the transmission department ensures that the master plan is effective. The master plan also includes transmission initiated projects and generation projects. Load flow studies, short circuit level investigations, customer supply requests, operational studies, strategic expansion studies and distribution network analyses are also performed on a day to day basis.
As seen in table 39.2 above, the 66 kV fault level at Van Eck power station is the only point where the fault current is relatively high. This is the only point in the network where caution is required regarding fault level. Application of New Technology NamPower is committed to having technically reliable, modern and state of the art technology and equipment. The Namibian grid has two static VAr compensators (SVCs), one in the Auas substation and another in Omburu substation. The SVC in Omburu was commissioned in the early 1980s; and has an analogue control system. Before the commissioning of the 400 kV lines, the SVC was utilized to maintain 316
CIGRE WG C1.9 voltage stability due to high line impedances northward of Omburu. The SVC also has a switching logic scheme for over-frequency, over-voltage and under-voltage conditions. The Auas SVC was commissioned in 2001; and has a special resonance detection algorithm. This algorithm ensures that the networks resonance frequency is maintained between 6870 Hz when closing a 400 kV line. The synchronous condensers at the Van Eck power station are also used to keep the resonant frequency slightly above 50 Hz when the Auas SVC is out of service. The Auas SVC has three external reactors connected to it, which are controlled by the substations Remote Terminal Unit (RTU). This SCV has two filter banks which are double tuned for the 5th and 7th harmonics. SVCs are expensive because of the sophisticated technology and high maintenance costs. Nonetheless, SVCs are essential to the network to ensure voltage and transient stability. High Voltage Direct Current (HVDC) is a new technology introduced into the Namibian grid on the new Caprivi interconnector link currently under construction. The HVDC technology incorporates Insulated Gate Bipolar Transistor (IGBT) technology. The IGBT technology is capable of controlling active and reactive power flows, hence it can perform voltage regulation. The HVDC also has an Optimized Pulse Width Modulator (OPWM). The OPWM eliminates most of the harmonics in the system and damps the remaining harmonics to certain levels. The remaining harmonics are removed from the system by filters. Optimized pulse width modulation is based on the principle of mathematically calculating a modulation index for the pulse width modulator. The IEC 61850 communications standard will be used on the HVDC, and it will use GOOSE to transmit and process all data for the system. Planning Against System Collapse The estimated cost of a system collapse is approximately 12 times the selling cost of each unit. In Namibia a blackout is estimated to last between 45 minutes and 1 hour. The country has no heavy industries that would experience severe damages in the case of a blackout. Static VAr compensators are used to dynamically prevent voltage collapse. The SVCs are placed on the backbone of the transmission grid for effectiveness. These devices work in conjunction with reactors and capacitors to ensure the stability of the system. The DIgSILENT power factory software package is used to perform dynamic studies for the network for various scenarios. These studies are performed to determine conditions that could initiate system collapse. Network Configurations Namibia is a country with a size of 824 268 km and a population of 2.1 million. This low population in a big country results in a grid that has infrastructure concentrated in a few areas in the country. This 317
CIGRE WG C1.9 has resulted in a grid that has long high voltage lines (radial) which are loosely meshed. The Namibian network has a strong source in the south (Eskom) and a hydro generating source in the north of the country. The two sources are connected together by 400/330/220 kV backbone lines. When Ruacana generation is low (hydro), the loss of a 400 kV line between Kokerboom and Auas can cause failure to supply all the load, thus resulting in load shedding Embedded/Dispersed Generation The Namibian grid has no embedded generation. Voltage Stability and Reactive Compensation The Namibian network is a weak network, thus SVCs are placed in the network to cater for voltage stability. There are two SVCs in the Namibian network, one at the Omburu substation and another one at Auas substation. The switching of reactors and capacitors is planned in such a way that the network is operated within the network specifications. Line and bus bar reactors are utilized to maintain voltage stability of the network within the required limits.
318
CIGRE WG C1.9 The companys financial performance determines its ability to pay back its loans and to keep operating. In the case where the company is unable to pay back the money borrowed, the company would formulate a re-financing process together with the lender. If the re-financing process fails, then the government is expected to step in and assist because it is the sole share holder. The tariffs are low, thus not cost effective. This is a challenge that hinders private investors from investing in the electricity sector. Independent Power Producers (IPPs) have not been introduced yet because the tariffs are too low for them to make profits. So far the company prefers bond funding and funding from development banks. Tight funding is not preferred because it restricts the company in terms of preference of equipment and technology choices. NamPower has a bond insurance of N$ 3 billion, of which only N$ 750 million has been used for the Caprivi link and the Ruacana fourth unit. Money borrowed from development banks is mostly used for infrastructure projects. Since NamPower is highly credit rated and guaranteed by the government; the lending agencies give long dated period loans (1520 years). A grace period of 23 years can also be given to prolong the payback period.
39.8 References
1. http://www.mme.gov.na/directe.htm 2. The Planned Regional Electricity Distributors (REDs) for Namibia, October 2005 by ECN 3. High Level Overview on the Caprivi Link Interconnector, 01 July 2009 4. The Namibian Grid Code Governance Code, November 2009 by ECN 5. Transmission Maximum Demand Load Forecast; March 2009 by F Binneman 6. NamPower 2009 Base Case Demand Forecast; 4 August 2009 7. The Namibia Grid Code The Network Code; May 2005 by ECN
319
CIGRE WG C1.9
40.
Niger
CIGRE WG C1.9 A 132 kV line from Birnin-Kebbi (Nigeria) to Niamey (Niger) supplies power to Niamey. In the case of a power failure on the Nigerian grid system, supplies are taken from the Goudel and Niamey II power stations which are available as spinning reserve. The main power stations are: Niamey II: Goudel: 20 MW 10 MW
The peak load recorded in the Niamey area is 70 MW in the year 2008. Throughout the country there are small scattered diesel generator sets from 60 kVA to 1 360 kVA The total installed generating capacity in Niger is 96 MW. The government is constructing a hydro facility at Kandadji. The Islamic Development Bank has taken the lead in financing the project. It was first conceived in the mid 1970s but construction only began in 2008. The power plant is located on the Niger River about 120 miles upstream of Niamey. The 165MW facility is estimated to cost $709 million and is expected to become operational in 2013. The state run electric utility Socit Nigerienne dElectricit (NIGELEC) imports 87% of its elect rical needs from the National Electric Power Authority in Nigeria via a 132 kV electrical connection that was constructed in 1976 and covers 260 km. It also receives hydroelectric power from Nigeria. There are two thermal power plants, one of which uses coal and the other uses oil [8]. Structure of Transmission, Distribution and Retail Business High voltage transmission lines: 132 kV and 66 kV.
The total 132 kV line length is 709 km. The total 66 kV line length is 434 km. Medium Voltage (MV) distribution lines: 33 kV and 20 kV. 321
CIGRE WG C1.9 Total MV distribution line length is 1 912.7 km. Low Voltage (LV) distribution lines: 380 V, and 220 V Total LV distribution line length is 1 436.1 km The total distribution network length is 3 348.8 km
Definition: This entry consists of total electricity generated annually plus imports and minus exports, expressed in kilowatt-hours. The discrepancy between the amount of electricity generated and/or imported and the amount consumed and/or exported is accounted for as loss in transmission and distribution. Source: CIA World Factbook unless otherwise noted, information is accurate as of 18 December 2008
322
CIGRE WG C1.9
40.5
The earth dyke dam will be 8.4 km dam long, creating a reservoir of 1.6 billion m3 and a regulated discharge of 120 m3/second (3.8 km3/year) in Niamey. The hydroelectric plant will have a capacity of 130 Megawatt, and a 132 Kilovolt high voltage line will be built over 188 km to Niamey. Irrigation development will consist of a first phase of 6 000 hectares mainly for the benefit of resettled communities, with a medium-term target in 2034 of 45 000 hectares out of an irrigable potential of 122 000 hectares [3].
323
CIGRE WG C1.9
40.8 References
1. Niger / AfD Bank Group President receives Nigers Finance and Economy Minister. African Press Organization (APO). 2. ReutersAlertNet: Niger begins building dam for food, electricity 3. Republic of Niger, Prime Ministers Office, High Commission for Niger Valley / African Development Bank: Kandadji Ecosystems Regeneration and Niger Valley Development Programme (Kernvdp), Detailed Population Resettlement Plan. Executive Summary, pg 3 4 4. OFID: Commitments in 2008 5. African Development Bank:Niger: US$62 Million ADF Funding for the development of Niger Valley Ecosystems 6. African Manager: Saudi Fund grants US$20 million to Niger for Kandadji dam 7. ReutersAlertNet: Niger begins building dam for food, electricity 8. http://www.estandardsforum.
324
CIGRE WG C1.9
41.
Nigeria
325
CIGRE WG C1.9 eighteen new electricity companies. The companies that will serve in the Nigeria power sector are: NEPA daughter companies. NEPA will be functionally unbundled into autonomous daughter companies for generation (GenCos), distribution (DisCos) and transmission (TransysCo). NEPA itself will be restructured as a holding company for a limited transition period, and later dissolved. o DisCos. Up to eleven DisCos will be instituted initially as semi-autonomous business units subject to monitoring and oversight by NEPA headquarters and later spun off as independent companies. o TransysCo. TransysCo will handle transmission construction, maintenance, operations and dispatch. Independent Power Producers. New generation in Nigeria will be supplied by independent power producers (IPPs), not the outgoing NEPA. In the current transition phase, NEPA and the Ministry execute the power purchase agreements, however in due course all generation purchases will be re-assigned to the DisCos. Market Oversight Committee. A Market Oversight Committee will set the market rules and ensure the efficient administration of energy trading. Market Operator. The Market Operator will implement the market rules and manage financial settlements. Nigerian Electricity Regulatory Commission (NERC). The NERC will regulate all of the new companies. The regulation of the sector and monitoring of the sector-based laws of energy, are governed by the Energy Commission of Nigeria Act, Cap 109 LFN 1990, which granted these prerogatives to the Energy Commission. The Nigeria electricity network map is shown in Figure 41.1 below:
326
CIGRE WG C1.9
CIGRE WG C1.9 kWh, i.e. below the cost of generation. However, a recent drive by Government and NEPA management has raised revenue collection from 4050% to 7080%. If sustained or improved, this will help the affordability of IPPs. The electricity demand forecast of peak capacity (MW) and energy (GWh) for Nigeria are shown in Figure 41.2 below. This study forecasts an average growth rate of 7% for peak capacity and 7.2% for energy.
70,000 60,000
Consumption
2006
2008
2010 Year
2012
2014
2016
This section presents an indicative generation expansion plan for Nigeria and Niger combined to meet the demand forecast. The results come from Elfin, a commercial multi-area production simulation model with a state-of-the art hydro algorithm. The model is used to evaluate the least-cost schedule of generation additions. Table 41.1 below shows the existing NEPA generation. NEPA has over 6 000 MW of installed capacity but the plants have not been properly maintained. The company is restoring around 4 200 MW of generating capacity of which 40% is hydro and 60% is thermal, mainly gas-fired. Most of the remaining inoperable facilities are beyond economic repair.
328
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 41.1: Nigeria Installed Generation Capacity
Station Kainji(Hydro) Jebba(Hydro) Shiroo(Hydro) Egbin(Steam) Sapele(Steam) SapCT Delta(SCGT) Afam(SCGT) Ijora(SCGT) Totals Year 1967/78 1986/90 1989/90 1985/87 1978 1981 1966/90 1959/1982 1978 Installed Capacity MW 760 540 600 1 320 720 320 900 977 60 6 177 Max Available Capacity in 2002 MW 480 482 600 1 274 150 50 400 248 15 3 700
In addition to the above resources there are two emergency power projects, one in Lagos and one in Abuja, that operate on a year-to-year basis. In 2005, the electric power generation sources of PHCN on the interconnected network of Nigeria had a total installed capacity of 6 688 MW shared between the following: PHCNs actual generation fleet of 5 913 MW and, Private producers; 270 MW for AES, 450 MW for AGIP and 55 MW for STS Ajaokuta. PHCN power generation installations account for 88.4% of the total installed capacity, while private producers account for 11.6%. The power generation fleet is composed of thermal power plants for 71% of the installed capacity, of which 16.3% is private producers. Hydro-power generation installations account for 29% of the installed capacity and belong to PHCN which operates and maintains them. It is estimated that about US$350 million is required per year to expand, replace and maintain the transmission network. There is no obvious source of funding for expenditure of this magnitude given NEPAs current financial outlook. From the West Africa Power Pool (WAPP) perspective, it is critical that Nigeria addresses its transmission reliability problems and inadequate control systems, as a prerequisite to integrate its operations with other WAPP member utilities. In particular, Nigeria must find a way to stabilize its system frequency.
329
CIGRE WG C1.9
CIGRE WG C1.9 Nigerian Electricity Regulation Commission (NERC) is a Federal agency mandated to create, promote and protect a viable electric power industry and market. It protects the interests of consumers, the quality and reliability of electricity, promotes private sector investments and monitors the operation of the sector. NERC is equally responsible for fixing electricity tariffs and granting operating licenses. It is also responsible for managing official assistance funds for electric power consumers, and funds budgeted for access of the deprived populations to electricity. Rural Electrification Agency (REA) created by the Electric Power Sector Reform Act 2005, is responsible for promoting and designing rural electrification plans, with the participation of the private and public sectors. It is composed of seven members, six of whom are from the six geopolitical regions. It is the manager of the rural electrification fund. The National Control Centre in Oshogbo is responsible for dispatching and rationing power to the distribution districts and directing regional transmission operations. In the past, Oshogbo only had telephone communication and frequency metering to monitor and operate the network. As a consequence it was difficult to operate effectively. There have been some important recent developments. There is a new modern supervisory control and data acquisition (SCADA) system and a new supplementary Nation Control Center at Shiroro has been established. The operators at Oshogbo now have consoles to monitor and control the interconnected generation and transmission systems. When there is insufficient generation to serve the connected load, NEPA implements a wellestablished system to ration the available generation according to a formula that provides set-asides for priority loads. The remaining energy is then allocated pro rata to the rest of the district loads. Daily energy rations are communicated by fax to the operators in the districts, where feeder load shedding is done manually.
331
CIGRE WG C1.9 NEPAs transmission system is old and the system deteriorated throughout the 1990s without rehabilitation or investment. However, in the past three years NEPA has made good use of a grant from the Nigerian Government and a loan from the World Bank for the enhancement of the transmission network and system operation. However, bottlenecks and reliability problems still plague the network. The transmission system is under extreme stress when generation exceeds 3 200 MW, and transmission related outages sometimes cause widespread blackouts. Due to a shortage of generating capacity resulting from high rate of unavailability of plants, PHCN set up a load shedding programme which is operated manually. The frequent shut down of generation and tran Hz. This fluctuation can constitute a serious handicap to the future operation of the interconnected system at the regional level. Effective solutions should be sought so as to resolve this problem before the final arrival of WAPPs 330 kV coastal backbone.
41.8 References
1. http://www.indexmundi.com/nigeria/electricity_consumption.html
CIGRE WG C1.9
42.
Rwanda
CIGRE WG C1.9 Taking into consideration the sectoral GDP performance in the past and more recent years, the breakdown of the GDP for the three scenarios (high, base and low) is summarized in Table 42.1:
Table 42.1: High, Low and Base Scenario of the GDP
Several econometric equations were developed and explored in order to explain the n ational electricity demand in terms of demographic and economic indicators. Combinations of variables were explored. The GDP total indicator was finally retained, because it gave the most reasonable and consistent results. Table 42.2. A number of other elements affecting the load forecast are summarized in
Table 42.2: The Elements and Assumptions Affecting the Load Forecast in Rwanda
The energy and peak demand forecast requirements for Rwanda are shown graphically in Figures 42.1 and 42.2 below. The peak demand includes all of the above plus an allowance of 20% for reserve capacity.
334
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 42.1: Peak Power Forecast in Rwanda. Source SSEA II Regional Power Needs Assessment report
Figure 42.2: Energy Demand Forecast in Rwanda. Source SSEA II Regional Power Needs Assessment report
335
CIGRE WG C1.9
CIGRE WG C1.9 following entities have shown interest in funding development for the East African pool (refer to Chapter 1.3.x) United Nations Economic Commission for Africa (ECA) The African Union (AU) The Union of Producers, Transporters and Distributors of Electric Power in Africa (UPDEA) Common Market for Eastern and Southern Africa (COMESA).
337
CIGRE WG C1.9
43.
GWh
Figure 43.1: Electricity production for 2000-2011
GWh
Figure 43.2: Electricity consumption for 2000-2011
Sao Tome and Principe has a largely agrarian based economy with much of the population reliant on
338
CIGRE WG C1.9 subsistence farming for their livelihood. The country relies heavily upon foreign assistance to fund its budget and to pay for capital projects. There is very little industry. The main agricultural crop is cocoa. Tourism is a sector the government has placed a high priority on in order to help offset a large trade deficit, provide jobs and generate foreign exchange. The government is also hoping that recent offshore oil exploration will discover commercial deposits. To spur economic growth and employment, the government has enacted measures to liberalize the economy that include allowing foreign investors to invest in virtually all sectors of the economy and eliminating public monopolies in farming, insurance, banking, airlines and telecommunications. Electrical power is provided by the Empresa de Agua e Electricidade (EMAE), a public-private companythat is 51% owned by the government, 40% by Sonangol of Angola and 9% by local investors. Hydropower accounted for 57.9% of electricity production in 2007 and petroleum and diesel the remainder. About half of the population has access to electricity. Biomass (firewood and charcoal) is used heavily for cooking purposes.
339
CIGRE WG C1.9
43.6
Financial Issues
There is the potential of discovering oil in relatively large quantities given that the country lies in the oil rich Gulf of Guinea. In 2001, the government signed an agreement with Nigeria concerning the joint exploration for oil in waters that are claimed by both countries. Under the agreement, a joint development zone (JDZ) was established and opened for bidding by international oil companies in April 2003. ChevronTexaco, Exxon Mobil and Equity Energy of Norway were awarded the initial contracts to search for oil in the JDZ. Nigeria received 60% and Sao Tome and Principe 40% of the $123 million earned from the bidding process. The initial drilling findings by ChevronTexaco proved to be disappointing. Addax 6 Petroleum of Switzerland (bought by Sinopec in 2009) also has drilling operations. On February 16, 2010, the government announced it had awarded an oil concession to Houston based RHC Energy Inc.[1]
Electrical power is provided by the Empresa de Agua e Electricidade (EMAE), a public-private company that is 51% owned by the government, 40% by Sonangol of Angola and 9% by local investors.Hydropower accounted for 57.9% of electricity production in 2007 and petroleum and diesel the remainder. About half of the population has access to electricity. Biomass (firewood and charcoal) is used heavily for cooking purposes. [1] Inmid 2008, Sonangol, the Angolan state oil company, invested EUR2 million to open two gasoline stations.At the end of 2008, it also signed various agreements worth EUR20 mn in the energy field. PortugalTelecom has interests in the telecommunication sector.[1]
43.8
References
340
CIGRE WG C1.9
44.
Senegal
Industry Structure Following institutional reform in 1998, Senegals electricity sector was split into three entities: Socit National dElctricit du Sngal (SENELEC) the national utility. The Agency for Rural Electrification (ASERA). The Electricity Regulatory Board (ERB).
341
CIGRE WG C1.9 SENELEC is the state-owned utility responsible for the transmission and distribution of electricity in Senegal. It also owns and operates many power stations. Since July 2002, SENELEC has also received power from the Organisation pour la Mise en Valeur du Fleuve Senegal (OMVS) (Senegal River Development Organization) generated by the Manantali Hydro Plant. Socit de Gestion delEnergie du Manantali (SOGEM) owns the Manantali plant and 1200 km of 225 kV transmission line that transports power to Senegal, Mauritania and Mali [1]. Privatization in Senegal has been fraught with obstacles. The central utility operates a single buyer system, purchasing from private producers. The General Electric/GTI Dakar Independent Power Producer (IPP), supplies approximately 20% of SENELECs electricity requirements. The second IPP is Kounoune1 which was partially funded by the International Finance Corporation. The regulator in Senegal is called the Commission de Regulation du Secteur de Electricite (CRSE) [2]. The CRSE is an independent authority, and is in charge of the regulation of the production activities, transport, distribution and sale of electrical energy. It also has advisory responsibilities to the Minister in charge of Energy. For this reason, it investigates licence and concession requests and ensures compliance with the regulations, determines the structure and the composition of the tariffs, and advises the Minister in charge of energy on the legislation and draft legislation projects. The CRSE takes care of the safeguarding of consumer interests, and protects their rights with regard to the price, supply, and the quality of service of electricity [5]. In Senegal, the public stakeholders operating in the electricity sector are [15]: The Ministry of Energy, which plays a technical supervisory role through its National Energy Management, and is responsible for formulating the general policy of the sector, the definition of the national electrification plan and the standards applicable to the sector. The Minister issues licenses and contracts on the advice of the CRSE. It authorizes electricity importation and exportation into and out of Senegal. It fixes electricity tariffs in consultation with the CRSE. The Rural Electrification Agency (ASER), which is charged with promoting rural electrification and is responsible for: o Designing the rural electrification programme, o Selecting operators, and awarding contracts in collaboration with CRSE, o Assisting operators technically and financially, and o Monitoring the implementation of priority programmes.
342
CIGRE WG C1.9 The key operators in the development and management of electric power generation, transmission, distribution and marketing infrastructures are [15]: SENELEC, which is a limited liability company, the capital of which is exclusively owned by the Senegalese state. It has a monopoly on transmission throughout the country and is the sole buyer from independent power producers (IPPs). Under the lease agreement, large scale clients have been able to buy directly from independent producers since 2008. SENELEC exercises a monopoly on electricity distribution and marketing within the boundaries granted to it. In 1999, SENELEC was privatized in conformity with Act No. 98-06, and acquired a strategic partner (Elyo/Hydro Qubec) relinquishing 34% of its capital. After an eighteen month privatization without attaining the targets set, the Senegalese Government and its partner amicably agreed to terminate the contract in January 2001. The second attempt at privatization in 2002 was not successful at the phase of invitation to tender. But the Government re-affirmed in its Lettre de Politique de Dveloppement du Secteur de lEnergie (LPDSE), its intention to carry on with the liberalization of the sector. ESKOM Energie Manantali (EEM) has an operation lease for the Manantali hydro-electric power plant in Mali and for the 225 kV interconnecting power line. These facilities are jointly owned by the OMVS member countries (Mali, Mauritania and Senegal) and the energy is shared according to the following quota: 33% for Senegal, 52% for Mali and 15% for Mauritania. Greenwich Turbine Inc (GTI) is an independent producer which sells its energy to SENELEC. Its first contract was awarded in 1996 and in 2000 GTI installed a 52 MW power plant in a build, own, operate and transfer (BOOT) type agreement for a duration of 15 years. It sells to SENELEC. Aggreko International Group installed a power plant of 48 MW capacity in 2005 and signed a leasing contract with SENELEC as the exclusive buyer of its production. Under the agreement, SENELEC should supply it with the generation fuel. Apart from the self-producers and independent producers, SENELEC also buys from the Industries Chimiques du Sngal (ICS), Sococim and Sonacos de Zinguinchor. Private operators who have operation contracts with ASER, whose implementation policy is defined in the Senegalese action plan for rural electrification Plan dAction Sngalais dElectrification Rurale (PASER).
343
CIGRE WG C1.9 Transmission Figure 42.2 shows the existing and planned transmission network. The network is centered around Dakar, but isolated distribution networks also exist at Tambacounda and Ziguinchor. To accommodate the power requirements of the Dakar area, SENELEC plans to create two 90 kV loops around Dakar and five new 90/30 kV substations. SENELEC also plans to extend the 225 kV transmission network from Tobene via Touba to Kaolack in the short term, in part to replace the old, expensive diesel units at the Kahone power station. SENELEC plans to connect Tambacounda to the main transmission network in 2010, and Ziguinchor in 2008 [1].
344
CIGRE WG C1.9 1057 MW in 2020. An average growth rate is assumed of 7% for peak capacity and 7.2% for energy [15]. SENELEC is also planning to use only interconnected networks by the year 2015 and not to be using non interconnected networks.
Table 44.1: Senegal Electricity Demand Forecast [15]
2006 2007 2008 2009 2010 2015 2020 Agr (%)
Capacity (MW) Interconnected Network (IN) Non Interconnected Network Total 390.7 14.6 405.3 413.8 15.9 429.7 444.1 17.3 461.4 388.4 5.4 493.9 525.9 5.9 531.8 784.7 0.0 784.7 1056.6 0.0 1056.6 7.0% 7.7%
Energy (GWh) Interconnected Network IN Non Interconnected Network Total 2323.9 71.2 2395.1 2461.2 77.3 2538.5 2641.4 84.1 2725.5 2905.3 26.8 2932.1 3128.0 29.4 3157.4 4667.5 0.0 4667.5 6284.6 0.0 6284.6 7.2% 7.7%
Generation SENELECs actual generation installations are allocated between the interconnected network with a total capacity of 358.9 MW, and the non-interconnected network with a total capacity of 37.6 MW. As a whole, these installations did not expand in 2005, in contrast with the generating capacity of SENELEC which increased with the commissioning of the Aggreko leased power installation of 48 MW. The available capacity is 457.6 MW. The structure of the installed capacity of the SENELEC electric power system is shown in Table 44.1 The installed generation capacity including type of generation is shown in Table 44.2 The existing and planned installed generation capacities are shown in Figure 44.3.
Table 44.2: Distribution of Installed Capacity of SENELEC Power System [15]
Source of Generation Own Installation of SENELEC Manantali Hydro Power Station GTI Private Power Plant Aggreko Leased Power Plant Total Installed Capacity (MW) 396.5 66 52 48 562.5 Participation (%) 70.5% 11.7% 9.2% 806% 100%
345
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 44.3: Generation Installation and Installed Capacity (MW) of SENELEC in 2005 [15]
Power Plant Company Type Date of Commissioning 1990 1953, 1955, 1959 and 1961 1999 1966, 1975 and 1978 1984 and 1994 1990/97 and 2003 1999 and 2000 2005 1979 1982 and 1988 1984, 1986, 1999 and 2006 Installed Capacity MW 9 51.2 35 87.5 60 91 52 48 6 18.8 15.2 7 15.4 2002 Total 66 562.1
Bel-air, C1 Bel-air, C2 Bel-air, C2 Cap des biches, C3 Cap des biches, C3 Cap des biches, C4 Cap des biches, IPP GTI Cap des biches, Aggreko Saint Louis Kahone Boutoude Tambacounda Centres Isoles Manantali
SENELEC SENELEC SENELEC SENELEC SENELEC SENELEC GTI Aggreko SENELEC SENELEC SENELEC SENELEC SENELEC SOGEM
Diesel Steam Turbine Gas Fired Turbine Steam Turbine Gas Fired Turbine Diesel Combined Cycle Diesel Diesel Diesel Diesel Diesel Diesel Hydro
SENELEC is planning to eliminate non interconnected network by 2015. The demand forecast is expected to grow to 785 MW during the same year.
Load (MW)
2004
2006
2008 Years
2010
2012
2014
2016
Installed Capacity
346
CIGRE WG C1.9
CIGRE WG C1.9 power project, which is expected to help meet the countys growing demand for electricity [19]. SENELEC is dealing with a chronic production gap, which has worsened due to an increased demand. The average demand increase during 20052009 is estimated at 7%, representing an electricity consumption of 1.993TWh in 2005 compared to an estimate of 2.66TWh in 2009. SENELEC is experiencing declining electricity supply reliability due to aging power plants. SENELECs operating costs and financial expenses rose considerably by 35.28% and 40.29% for the 2004 and 2005 fiscal years respectively. According to SENELEC this increase is attributed to the soaring price of petroleum products and the renting of generators to increase energy supply at the expense of profitability [15]. Senegal has embarked on an aggressive effort to produce significant quantities of biofuels, initially to run electricity generation units, and has a pilot project using sugarcane-based ethanol [11]. One quarter of the population in Senegal has access to electricity. In urban areas, the percentage rises to 50% but drops as low as 5% among the rural population. Only 250 of the 13 000 villages in Senegal are electrified. In those areas, only 25% of households are actually connected to the grid, as financial or infrastructural constraints prohibit access by the greater population [3]. The Government of Senegal initiated a project with assistance from the World Banks Africa Traditional Energy Program, to meet an important part of the rapidly growing demand for household fuels without an associated loss in forest cover and biodiversity and increased greenhouse gas emissions. Specifically, the project is encouraging community management of forests, promoting interfuel substitution and improved stoves, and strengthening relevant institutions. The project is being implemented by Senegals Ministry of Environment and Protection of Nature as well as the Ministry of Industry and Energy [13]. In the final report of the Transmission Stability Study for the Economic Community of West African States (ECOWAS), certain projects were proposed in the report to be done by 2011 which included Senegal. The cost of the proposed project for Senegal was estimated at US$122 million. The study is for the benefit of ECOWAS member countries, United States of America International Donor (USAID), lenders and other donors. The Organisation pour la Mise en Valeur du Fleuve Gambie (OMVG) network will provide the first ever link between the coastal countries of Senegal, Gambia, Guinea Bissau and Guinea, and will make possible long distance energy exchanges all the way from Conakry to Dakar. The benefits of the OMVG network arise from the following: The reduction in reserve capacity that would be needed in each participating country to meet the required standard of reliability. The substitution of high-cost generation in Gambia and Guinea Bissau with lower-cost power
348
CIGRE WG C1.9 from Senegal and Guinea. The extension of the grid supply network to displace high cost local generating plants that are less efficient and often burn more expensive fuel (diesel) than grid-connected power stations which burn heavy fuel oil (HFO), or hydro stations [14]. SENELECs network is connected at Tobene to the 225 kV OMVS line, which transmits power from the Manantali hydro plant. The Coyne et Bellier feasibility study report on Felou proposes that the best solution to implement the N-1 criterion for the OMVS transmission line would be to develop the southern 225 kV branch Kayes-Tambacounda-Kaolack. That route will offer better reliability securing energy transmission from Manantali to western Senegal [1]. This route offers the following advantages: Better reliability, securing energy transmission from Manantali to western Senegal. Lower transmission losses. Better system stability, reinforcing the network between Bamako, Dakar and Nouakchott. Link with the proposed northern loop of the OMVG network, which also includes a section from Tambacounda to Kaolack. The Zone B interconnected network (Mali, Senegal and Mauritania) is adequate to carry the existing load, however the 225 kV OMVS line is close to its limit at 80% loading. An N-1 contingency involving the OMVS line is serious and leads to system divergence [14].
349
CIGRE WG C1.9
44.8 References
1. Final Report West Africa Regional Transmission Stability Study. Volume 2: Master Plan. 2. Wikipedia 3. www.areed.org/country/senegal/senegal.pdf 4. www.SENELEC.sn 5. www.crse.sn/pdf/carteElectriciteSenegal.pdf 6. www.gefweb.org/work_Programs/wp_febol/senegal_energy_conversetion.pdf 7. Assessing the Impact of Privatization in Africa 8. Volume 3 Stability Study and Operational Analysis Final 9. http://books.google.co.za/books?id=dg2mhydirtKkc&pg 10. http://www.gnesd.org/downloadables/Energy_Access_I/Technical_report_ENDA_ver_16_ April_2004.pdf 11. http://en.Wikipedia.org/wiki/Energy_in_Senegal 12. www.absenergyreseach.com
CIGRE C1.9 AFRICA STUDY REPORT
350
CIGRE WG C1.9 13. http://www.gefweb.org/Outreach/outreach-PUblications/Project_factsheet/Senegal-sust-1cc-wb-eng-ld.pdf. 14. Final Report West Africa Regional Transmission Stability Study. Project summary report. August 2004. 15. http://www.ecowapp.org/WAPP%20PDFS/KPI-ENG.pdf 16. http://www.usaid.gov/locations/sub-saharan_africa/countries/senegal/ 17. http://www.ecowapp.org/Reports/11th_dcm.pdf 18. http://www.asilea.com/projects_pv.htm 19. http://www.eia.doe.gov/emeu/cabs/ECOWAs/full.html
351
CIGRE WG C1.9
45.
Seychelles
352
CIGRE WG C1.9 complex network which supplies electric power to Mahe, Praslin and the inner islands. The Electricity Division of the PUC is responsible for the generation, transmission and distribution of the electricity supply in Seychelles. The Division has the crucial task of maintaining an efficient, coordinated and economical system of electricity supply paying due regard to the environment and consumer's requests. This is achieved through the management of three diesel-generating stations and 11 kV and 33 kV networks extending over 395 km. The Division comprises of a Generation Section and a Transmission and Distribution Section. Generation The Generation section is responsible for electricity production for Mahe, Praslin, La Digue and the inner islands only. The section's main objectives are to produce safer, more reliable and economical sources of electricity to meet the country's requirements. On Mahe, there are two power plants: Power Station B, located at New Port, and Power Station C, located at Roche Caiman. The country's first power plant, Power Station A, is located at Huteau Lane and is no longer in service. Power Stations B and C are tasked with generating the required electricity supply for Mahe as well as the inner islands. On Praslin, there is one power plant, located at Baie Ste. Anne. This power plant supplies Praslin, La Digue, Ile Ronde and Ile Chauve-Souris. Transmission & Distribution The Transmission and Distribution section is responsible for the transmission and distribution of electrical power on Mahe, Praslin, La Digue and the inner islands. The main objectives are to transmit bulk electrical power over long distances and to redistribute this power safely and reliably to all consumers. Transmission of electrical power is achieved through the 33 kV network. This network transmits electrical power at a voltage of 33 kV from Power Stations B and C to the 33 kV substation at Anse Boileau. From there, the voltage is stepped down to the 11 kV required for distribution through means of 33 kV / 11 kV transformers. Distribution of electrical power is achieved through means of the 11 kV network which extends around the islands. This 11 kV supply is further stepped down to a lower voltage and the vast majority of consumers are connected at this lower voltage through means of distribution substations and their associated low voltage networks. 353
CIGRE WG C1.9 This section also provides an inspectorate service to the public to maintain a high standard of electrical wiring in all installations. Developments in Energy Sector With the growth in the nation's development comes a growth in the demand for electricity. Presently, our generating capacity is able to meet demand, but anticipating the future growth, it may be necessary to install extra generators to accommodate the changes. At present, the greater concern is towards the transmission and distribution of electrical energy to where it is needed, with minimal loss in power and voltage. To this end, a project to reinforce the 33 kV Network to the South of Mahe has been proposed, and will begin shortly. Future Projects: Installation of additional generator sets at the Roche Caiman and Praslin Power Stations New Power Plant on Mahe Network Development on Ile Aurore, Ile Du Port and Ile Perseverance Network Development at Zones 6 and 18, Providence Undersea Cable from Long Island to La Digue
The average annual growth rate in electricity demand for Mahe and Praslin / La Digue during the year 2008 was lower by approximately 2%. The recorded maximum electricity demand for Mahe is 37.1 MW, whilst that for Praslin and La Digue combined is 6.1 MW. The number of connected consumers at the end of 2005 was approximately 29 020.
354
CIGRE WG C1.9
CIGRE WG C1.9 government of Abu Dhabi, which specializes in the development of wind and solar power, to develop wind power on Mah. On October 28, 2009, a feasibility study that will last 12-15 months was begun.[1]
45.8 References
1. http://www.estandardsforum.org 2. http://www.puc.sc/
356
CIGRE WG C1.9
46.
Sierra Leone
Sierra Leones Ministry of Energy and Power has responsibility for the entire electricity sector, and is the policy making organ of this sector. Its responsibilities also cover harnessing the countrys considerable hydropower potential, the most notable of which is the Bumbuna Hydroelectric Project (BHEP), and matters related to alternative energy sources. The National Power Authority (NPA) is the vertically integrated monopoly supplier of electricity in the Western Area, where the capital, Freetown, is situated. The NPA is further responsible for the operation of electricity supply in the provinces. The Bo-Kenema Power Services (BKPS) is a semiautonomous division of the NPA, and is responsible for the integrated supply of electricity to the townships of Bo and Kenema and their environs. Power supply is still grossly inadequate and is subject to frequent interruptions in Freetown. Oversight of the NPA currently rests with the National Commission for Privatisation (NCP) pending its eventual privatization [7]. The National Power Authority Act of 1982 established the NPA as the entity with the sole responsibility for carrying out power (including hydro) generation, transmission and distribution in the country. The 1993 NPA (Amendment) Act stipulated additional governance duties for the NPA. The Project Implementation Unit (PIU) for the BHEP reports to the Ministry of Energy and Power. The 357
CIGRE WG C1.9 NPA forms part of the Technical Committee which oversees the Bumbuna PIU. Operational oversight of the NPA is provided by a Board, which reports directly to the NCP in preparation for Private Sector Participation. This will allow for more investment and financial support for projects in the countrys electrical power sector. Much of the Sierra Leones power generation capacity was hampered during the civil war. The country currently experiences frequent blackouts in the Freetown peninsula and electricity supply is available to customers only for a few hours every week. Most areas in the interior of the country are wholly or largely without access to electricity. About 90% of Sierra Leones electricity is consumed in the countrys four main cities. The capital city of Freetown uses 82% of the countrys electrical power, followed by Kenema which uses 3%, Bo uses 3%, and Makeni uses 2% [3, 4]. Sierra Leones power generation relies substantially on fuel oil imports. Freetowns electricity supply comes from the oil-powered Kingtom power generating station, which struggles to provide a continuous and uninterrupted power supply, due to it being in poor condition. The NPA is responsible for providing electricity to Sierra Leone. The company was previously named the Sierra Leone Electricity Corporation (SLEC). In recent years the NPA has been undergoing privatization, allowing more investment and financial support for projects in the countrys electrical power sector. There is a substantial interest in developing Sierra Leones hydropower potential. A major hydropower project had been the focus for providing the power needs of the country for a long time. The Bumbuna Hydroelectric Project (BHP) had been developed in 1970 but civil conflict in the country caused construction works to be suspended in 1997 when the project was 85 per cent complete. It was only in June 2005 that the World Bank approved construction to be resumed on the project. The project entails a hydropower complex, located on the Seli River, in the valleys of the Sula Mountains, approximately 200 km northeast of Freetown, in the Kalansogoia Chiefdom of the Tonkolili district. It encompasses an 88 m high rock-fill dam with an asphalted concrete upstream face; a 50 MW power station housing two turbine-generator units of 25 MW each; a transmission system consisting of 200 km of 161 kV transmission line from the power station to Freetown and a substation in Freetown to feed power into the Western Area grid. It includes a separate power service to Makeni, Lunsar and Port Loko. The BHP is seen as beneficial to the future of Sierra Leones electrical power sector because it can greatly improve the current power supply situation by providing a reliable supply of electricity that would meet the electricity needs of the West African country, including Freetown, at the lowest possible cost and in a sustainable manner. Moreover, the electricity generated by the BHP will provide power to new towns such as Makeni, Lunsar and Port Loko, which are currently not connected to the grid. The project was due to be completed by the end of 2007.
358
CIGRE WG C1.9
The following activities are envisaged for the medium term (20072009) [2]: The Arab Bank for Economic Development in Africa (BADEA) Project (22.68 MW). Phase I the supply, installation and commissioning of one 7.56 MW diesel generating unit (DGU) at Blackhall Road. Phase II the supply, installation and commissioning of two 7.56 MW DGUs. o The Japan International Cooperation Agency (JICA) Project (10 MW). o The Japanese Government, via JICA, is on course with the implementation of a 10 MW (2 X 5 MW) thermal project at the Kingtom Generating Station by the last quarter of 2008. The Bumbuna Hydroelectric Project (Phase I: 50 MW). Ninety-five per cent of the dam construction work has been completed for this initial 50 MW phase. The Government of Sierra Leone has secured a US$10 million loan from the Organization of Petroleum Exporting Countries (OPEC) for the completion of the 161 kV transmission line between Bumbuna and Freetown. The entire first phase of the project was thus expected to be completed by the third quarter of 2007, resulting in a 50 MW generating capacity in the rainy season and 18 MW in the dry seasons.
359
CIGRE WG C1.9 During this medium term, the Sulzer 5 generating unit (9.2 MW installed capacity) at the Kingtom Generating Station, currently being overhauled, is expected to come on stream with an output of about 6 MW. Thus, by 2009, the minimum expected generation in Greater Freetown would be 100 MW. For a population of about 5 million now, a minimum residential power requirement for the country is 500 MW. Taking population growth and industrialization into account, by 2015 the country should require at least 1000 MW of generating capacity. In an effort to meet this power requirement, the following are some of the initiatives envisaged (20102015): The Bumbuna Hydroelectric Project (Potential: 275 MW). Phase I current: 50 MW. Phase II 40 MW additional installed capacity on the same dam as in Phase I. Phase III 90 MW additional installed capacity from an additional dam at Yiben, upstream of the current. Phase IV/V additional installed capacity of 95 MW from both the Bumbuna and Yiben dams. Thus, total installed capacity at the completion of all phases of the project is expected to be 275 MW during the rainy season and 134 MW during the dry seasons. Phases II to V are estimated to be completed in 5 to 6 years. The Bekongor Hydroelectric Project (Potential: 200 MW). In addition to the above hydro project, Government has revived interest in the development of the 85 MW Bekongor III hydro project in the Kono district. In the event of Bekongor I, II and III being developed, an estimated total installed capacity of 200 MW is realizable. The Bo-Kenema Power Services (BKPS) Goma Hydroelectric Facility (12 MW). The 4 MW Goma hydroelectric facility operated by the Bo-Kenema Power Services (BKPS), an autonomous subsidiary of NPA, is expected to be expanded to 12 MW in two phases. The first phase is expected to be an upgrade of the turbines from 4 MW to 6 MW and the second phase the construction of a new dam upstream of the current and the installation of additional turbines to bring the total installed capacity to 12 MW. This upgrade/expansion will be undertaken by the China National Electric Equipment Corporation (CNEEC). Thus, by 2015, the expected additional total installed generating capacity countrywide is 519.68 MW (487 MW hydro; 32.68 MW thermal), broken down as shown in Table 46.7 below.
360
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 46.2: Forecasted Installed Capacity for 2015
Generating Facility Bumbuna Hydro Bekongor Hydro Goma Hydro BADEA Thermal JICA Thermal Installed Capacity (MW) 275 200 12 22.68 10
It has to be noted that the hydro potential in the country, according to the 1996 Lahmeyer International Power Sector Master Plan, is 1 200 MW. Thus, further aggressive exploitation of this energy resource must be relied upon to address the countrys energy needs.
361
CIGRE WG C1.9 The National Power Authority (NPA), the countrys utility established in 1982, is in charge of the generation, transmission, distribution and supply of electricity. The Kingtom Power Station, currently the only available generating station in the Western Area, had an installed capacity of 39 MW in 2005 (generating capacity is around 8 MW) and a very poor availability and reliability track-record. The NPA provides a service to a customer base of 45 000 with nearly 600 employees. The transmission and distribution network covers an area of 450 km2 and can safely supply 20 MW from a designed capacity of 36 MW. In 2005, the utility produced 53.5 GWh, a 56% decline from its peak of 123.5 GWh in 2002 (2006 estimates were 24 GWh) [6].
362
CIGRE WG C1.9 electrical power systems. Figure 46.2 shows the interconnected countries. The envisaged connections are as follows [8, 9]: Coastal Transmission Backbone Sub-program (Cte dIvoire, Ghana, Benin/Togo, Nigeria): Inter-zonal Transmission Hub Sub-program (Burkina Faso, OMVS via Mali, Cte dIvoire via Mali, LSG via Cte dIvoire). North-core Transmission Sub-program (Nigeria, Niger, Burkina Faso, Benin): OMVG/OMVS Power System Development Sub-program (The Gambia, Guinea, Guinea Bissau, Mali, Senegal). Liberia-Sierra Leone-Guinea Power System Re-development Sub-program (Cte dIvoire, Liberia, Sierra Leone, Guinea).
363
CIGRE WG C1.9
364
CIGRE WG C1.9 funding constraint may very well be addressed by the fact that the monopoly of the NPA over the generation, transmission, distribution and other related activities was repealed under that Act. Thus, private sector and/or public-private financing of such hydro projects is now possible and should be aggressively pursued [2]. The inability of Government to provide its own financial contribution to the current phase of the Bumbuna project has necessitated the acquisition of a commercial loan for which a partial risk guarantee (PRG), with its attendant conditions, is being provided by the World Bank. The on-going financing is as follows [6]: Sierra Leone Power and Water Project: IDA Credit US$20 million covers institutional development, regulatory development, legal frameworks for sector, capacity-building, rehabilitation and maintenance. Under this credit, the Government of Sierra Leone (GoSL), with support from the National Commission for Privatization (NCP) and its advisers, are preparing terms of reference for a transaction adviser to prepare a Management Contract (to commence in January 2008) to support NPA management and operations and effectively take over the day to day management of the NPA. Government of the Republic of South Africa: Acquisition and installation of a 6.9 MW diesel generating unit at the Kingtom Power Station which has been installed and pre-commissioned. A new cooling tower has been purchased to improve cooling (operational in April 2007). Arab Bank for Economic Development in Africa (BADEA) and the Saudi Development Fund (SDF). Acquisition of 3 x 7.56 MW diesel generating units to be installed at the Blackhall Road site in mid 2008. Japan International Cooperation Agency (JICA). Supply of 2 x 5 MW units (expected commissioning by mid 2009 awaiting Japanese Government approval). Estimated cost is approximately US$10 million to be commissioned mid 2009. Key elements of this assistance include: 2 x 5 MW generating sets at the Kingtom Power Station; new 33 kV sub-station at Regent; new 33 kV lines between Wilberforce and the Regent sub-station; new 11 kV lines between Kingtom and Wilberforce, on the one hand, and between Falconbridge and Blackhall Road on the other.
365
CIGRE WG C1.9 The shortfall of health personnel continues to represent one of the major constraints to the development of health services and access to basic health care in Sierra Leone. This is against a background of increased demands for health care from various stakeholders, a shrinking budget against high expectations from the public for quality health care. Sierra Leone has implemented health human resource policies and plans to chart the course for a coherent resolution of major human resources problems and puts in place a framework to facilitate decision making in the human resources arena. The HRH Global Resource Center provides hosting services for two of the HRH policy and planning documents for the Ministry of Health and Sanitation of Sierra Leone: Sierra Leone Human Resource for Health Development Plan 20062010 This plan contains an analysis of the current situation with a focus on the distribution of Health Personnel, the current stock, wastage, outputs from training schools, dropout rates and human resources policies currently in place in the Ministry of Health and Sanitation. It also projects future requirements based on the recommended establishment. [10]
46.8 References
1. http://geography.about.com/library/cia/blcsierraleone.htm 2. http://siteresources.worldbank.org/SIERRALEONEEXTN/Resources/SL_Energy_Sector_. pdf 3. http://www.mbendi.com/indy/powr/af/sl/p0005.htm 4. http://www.energyrecipes.org/reports/genericData/Africa/061129%20RECIPES%20countr y%20info%20Sierra%20Leone.pdf 5. http://www.iaea.org/inisnkm/nkm/aws/eedrb/data/SL-elich.html 6. http://www.dacosl.org/encyclopedia/2_coord/2_3/1Qtr_4_DEPAC_energypresentation07.ppt 7. http://www.uneca.org/eca_resources/Conference_Reports_and_Other_Documents/sdd/cem mats_study.pdf 8. http://www.africa-investor.com/presentations/ 9. http://www.narucpartnerships.org/Documents/Amadeos%20Presentation.ppt 10. http://www.hrhresourcecenter.org/sierra_leone_policies
366
CIGRE WG C1.9
47.
Somalia
In 1992, responding to the political chaos and humanitarian disaster in Somalia, the United States and other nations launched peacekeeping operations to create an environment in which assistance could be delivered to the Somali people. By March 1993, the potential for mass starvation in Somalia had been overcome, but the security situation remained fragile. On 3 October 1993 U.S. troops received significant causalities (19 dead over 80 others wounded) in a battle with Somali gunmen. When the United States (in 1994) and the UN withdrew (in 1995) their forces from Somalia, after suffering significant casualties, order still had not been restored. The United States has no formal relations with Somalia. Somalia has not had a functioning national government since 1991 and presently has no constitution in force. In February 2004, a Transitional Federal Charter was established which could serve as the basis for a future constitution. In August 2004, the Somali Transitional Federal Authority (TFA) was established as part of the Somalia National
CIGRE C1.9 AFRICA STUDY REPORT
367
CIGRE WG C1.9 Reconciliation Conference. The Somalia National Reconciliation Conference concluded after it elected a Transitional President in October 2004. The current attempt to form a national government follows another structure which was tried in 2000. The Transitional National Government (TNG) was created in October 2000 with the three-year mandate of creating a permanent national Somali government. Although they declared their independence, the TNG did not recognize Somaliland and Puntland as independent republics and was unable to reunite the country. Somaliland refused to participate in peace talks with TNG, saying that while it would welcome peace in former Italian Somalia, Somaliland is an independent country Somalia is unable to receive International Monetary Fund (IMF) and other multilateral aid due to the lack of institutions or financial infrastructure in place. In 2005, Somalia had an estimated gross domestic product (GDP) growth of 5.7 per cent. A GDP increase of 2.6 per cent was the forecast for 2006. [1] Oil and Natural Gas Somalia has no proven oil reserves, and only 200 billion cubic feet of proven natural gas reserves. Somalia currently has no hydrocarbon production. Oil seeps were first identified by Italian and British geologists during the colonial era. Exploration activities were focused in northern Somalia, and several foreign firms, including Agip, Amoco, Chevron, Conoco and Phillips, held concessions in the area. The firms all declared force majeure following the collapse of the central government. Exploration activity remains hindered by the internal security situation and the multiple sovereignty issues. In February 2001 Total signed an exploration agreement with the Transitional National Government (TNG). The twelve-month agreement granted Total the rights to explore in the Indian Ocean off southern Somalia. Hassan Farah, TNGs Minister for Water and Mineral Resources, stated that the government would provide security during the exploration activities. Several factional leaders denounced the agreement, and stated that the TNG did not have the authority to sanction the agreement, nor the power to guarantee the safety and security of the exploration operations. In May 2001, Somaliland signed an agreement with UK-registered Rovagold and two Chinese firms, CPEC and CPC, for the right to explore for oil. Dubai-based Zarara Energy also signed an exploration agreement with Somaliland. The Somaliland government has said it will honor, until they expire, the existing contracts foreign companies signed with the Barre regime that are in their territory. None of the firms have resumed operations in Somaliland. Somalias petroleum consumption was an estimated 6 000 barrels per day (bbl/d) in 2005. The organization officially responsible for all petroleum product distribution and retailing is the cooperative Iskash. The state-owned Iraqsoma Refinery Corporation had operated a 10 000-bbl/d
368
CIGRE WG C1.9 refinery outside of Mogadishu, but it has been inoperative since 1991. Total is involved in the downstream sector in Somaliland. It rehabilitated and manages the operations of the oil terminal in Berbera, Somalilands primary port. Total also supplies fuel to airports located in Berbera and Somalilands capital of Hargeisa. [1] Electricity Somalia currently has installed electricity generating capacity of 80 megawatts (MW), all of which is diesel-fired. Ente Nazionale Energia Elettrica (ENEE) is the entity responsible for generation, transmission and distribution of electricity in Somalia. Electrical infrastructure has been damaged and destroyed, and the ongoing strife has hindered the development of new electric resources. A planned hydroelectric facility on the Juba River has been delayed due to the continued fighting. Studies have indicated that the Horn of Africa, especially Somalia, is a prime location for harnessing wind for electricity generation. Plans for wind generation have been proposed, but were derailed following the ouster of the Barre regime. [1] In October 2001, WorldWater Corp., a US-based water management and solar engineering company, signed agreements with the TNG to become the master consultant and contractor for all water and energy programmes in Somalia. Under the three-year agreement WorldWater would develop, manage and oversee contracting for the countrys water resources and incorporate renewable energy projects such as solar power into Somalias infrastructure. This includes locating and managing groundwater sources in municipal and rural areas, delivering water for drinking and for irrigation using the WorldWaters solar pumping systems and generating independent electricity with its solar power systems. http://www.eoearth.org/article/Energy_profile_of_Somalia Energy Alternatives Africa (EAA) and Horn of Africa Relief and Development Organization (Horn Relief, for short), have taken up the challenge to get a solar industry started in the region. With all electricity infrastructure destroyed, and among the best solar resources in the world, many Somalis are committed to using solar energy as a new building block for their infrastructure. The production of electricity was 235.6 GWh in 2003, with electricity consumption of 219.1 GWh.
369
CIGRE WG C1.9
GWh
Figure 47.2: Electricity production for 2000-2011
GWh
CIGRE WG C1.9
47.8 References
1. www.mbendi.com 2. CIA factbook
371
CIGRE WG C1.9
48.
South Africa
CIGRE WG C1.9 Service level. Investments. Maintenance. Safety. Health, and Environment. The Department of Energy (DoE) oversees all activities of the electricity sector.
All connections to the transmission networks are subject to the South African Grid Code which is the responsibility of NERSA. The Grid Code has seven sections: Preamble Code. Governance Code. Network Code. System Operation Code. Metering Code. Transmission Tariff Code. Information Exchange Code.
373
CIGRE WG C1.9 Customers in South Africa are normally connected via Distribution Suppliers at distribution voltages of less than 132 kV. These Distribution Retailers are either a municipality or in some areas, mainly the rural parts of the country, an Eskom Distributor. These Distribution Suppliers or retailers are all licensed by NERSA. In some cases certain large power users are connected directly to the Transmission System depending on the nature of the load and the connection. These are regarded and treated as special customers. Generation is collected via an Eskom Internal Pool from the various Eskom power stations and international imports. This internal pool power is then sent via the Eskom Transmission system to the different distributors across the country. Certain of the municipalities have their own internal generation plant as well as small IPPs who are connected directly to the Distributors. Eskom has a separate fully owned subsidiary. Eskom Enterprises which manages projects within South Africa as well as projects and utilities outside the borders of the country.
374
CIGRE WG C1.9 In order to facilitate this supply of power Eskom has been structured into three main core businesses, namely Generation Business Networks and Customer Services Business Corporate division This is the structure as in 2010 with a number of subsidiaries which fall under a holdings company, Eskom Holdings Limited, of which the Government is the only shareholder. This structure is shown in figure 48.3. However in order to face the challenges of the future where there will be more IPPs and a drive for renewable energy Eskom will be restructured during 2011. The process is still at an early stage but Eskom will be reorganized into a number of Divisions and Operating Units reporting directly to the CEO. The final structure is not complete and is subject to change after consultation with key stakeholders within Eskom, the Government and the industry. These are currently expected to be as follows: Core Divisions: Generation Transmission Distribution Customer Service Support Operating Units: Group Commercial Human Resources Finance Technology Other strategic Operating Units (list not complete): Single Buyer Office Southern Africa Energy Renewables Shared Services Academy of Learning
375
CIGRE WG C1.9
376
CIGRE WG C1.9 Econometric regression analysis. o A regression model depicts the effect of the economic growth (gross domestic product growth), population growth, electrification and fuel switching, on the demand for electricity. A new method for determining the MW demand growth forecast has recently been developed, known as the Balanced Base Line method which takes into account a number of independent sources of the actual spatial economic growth and relates the demand to the various substation load points. The forecasts are then compared against the projected S-curve of the future demand to arrive at the balanced base line values. The graph in Figure 48.4 shows the historical demand growth from 1951 to 2009 and then the projected demand growth till 2051.
Figure 48.4: Historical and Project Demand Forecast for South Africa from 1951 to 2051
The expected peak demand for 2020 is around 54 000 MW and in 2030 around 62 000 MW. This takes into account the changing load pattern where there is expected to be an increase in service orientated business and a reduced growth in the primary resources business such as mining. This demand growth represents a significant challenge to Eskom and the country as a whole in terms of accessing and integrating the new generation. South Africa has an abundance of coal, but building new coal fired plant is both getting more expensive and also becoming less acceptable globally in terms of contribution to greenhouse gas pollution. Thus South Africa will have to consider increasing nuclear and renewable energy options as there are no local natural gas resources. Renewables are very new to South Africa, but there is an abundance of both wind and solar resources. However neither are 377
CIGRE WG C1.9 close to the existing transmission infrastructure and load centres which will prove a challenge to integrate them into the network.
Table 48.1: Sales of electricity and number of customers in South Africa
The reference plan is be based on the Balanced Base Line demand forecast and will represent the least cost plan constrained to the established reserve margin. A typical weekly load profile is shown in Figure 48.5 with two daily peaks. The peak for each day occurs in the late afternoon or early evening. Note the difference in generation between 02h00 and 12h00 each day. The difference between the planned or forecasted load and the actual load requires the System Operator to raise and lower the generation from 20 000 MW to 34 000 MW each day.
378
CIGRE WG C1.9
379
CIGRE WG C1.9 Eskom to make a business case before such reinforcement can proceed. To make such a business case, a new line must satisfy one of the following two economic criteria: The net present value (NPV) of the cost of losses and operation and maintenance is greater than the cost of the reinforcement; or The expected NPV of the cost of interruptions to customers associated with unreliability must exceed the cost of the reinforcement. Such costs are evaluated using the cost of un-served energy. The Least Economic Cost (LEC) method is used for planning the expansion of the grid. This method looks at: the probability of losing one, or more, network components, and the impact this has on the transfer capability. With regard to the planning studies the standards that are applied are provided in the following three tables: Table 48.1: Voltage Limits for planning purposes Table 48.2: Table 48.3: Standard Voltage Levels as used in South Africa Target Voltage levels for planning purposes
The system frequency limits for South Africa are provided in the graph in Figure 48.6. Eskom has a Planning Guideline which details the necessary studies to be undertaken and what load conditions to consider when undertaking the studies. The studies encompass steady state, fault current and dynamic studies. Small signal analysis is done on the whole network to identify any potential problems. The guideline also details how to evaluate different options and what criteria to apply when selecting the recommended option to reinforce or extend the transmission network.
380
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 48.2: Voltage Limits for Planning Purposes
381
CIGRE WG C1.9
Maximum voltage change owing to load varying N times per hour. (4.5 LOG10N)% of UN Maximum voltage decrease for a 5% (MW) load increase at receiving end of system (without adjustment).
0.05 UN
382
CIGRE WG C1.9
383
CIGRE WG C1.9 The relative locations of the Eskom power stations are shown in the map in Figure 48.10 with the detailed list of the power station capacities given in Table 48.8.
Figure 48.8: Map of the major Transmission Network of South Africa as in 2009
384
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 48.5: Transmission and Distribution equipment in service in 2010
Table 48.6: New Transmission equipment to be added during the period from 2010 and 2019 as per the Transmission Development Plan
TDP New Asset HVDC Lines (km) 765kV Lines (km) 400kV Lines (km) 275kV Lines (km) Transformers 250MVA+ Transformers <250MVA Total installed MVA Capacitors Total installed MVAr Reactors Total installed MVAr Total 1,700 6,770 8,355 831 103 29 67,840 19 2,366 56 14,600
385
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 48.9: Map of the Transmission Development Plan for the period 2010 to 2019 showing the major transmission projects
2 409
G G G
386
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 48.10: Map of the existing Eskom power stations in 2009 Table 48.7: Eskom Power Station Capacities in 2010
Three new Eskom power stations have been approved and are currently under construction. They are as follows:
387
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 48.8: New power stations under construction
Name Medupi Kusile Ingula Type Coal fired Coal fired Pumped Storage Size 6 x 800 MW 6 x 800 MW 4 x 333 MW 1 unit Dec 2012 Dec 2014 Jan 2014
st
CIGRE WG C1.9 circuit lines. However some of the lines could be either re-conductored with a larger conductor bundle or re-insulated to operate at a higher voltage. It is recommended that all the 275 kV lines and many of the 400 kV lines be investigated to determine what potential uprating or upgrading is possible using the existing tower structures. Implementation of HVDC schemes Results from the analysis of the generation power pools in the Strategic Grid Plan studies indicate that there will be excess generation in either of the two extreme ends of the network, to the north and to the south. The generation far exceeds the local or nearby loads and the excess power will have to be transported over a long distances to where the power is required. The viable long term options are to construct HVDC schemes to undertake this as they provide the significant operational advantage of increased generation stability capability. It has been strongly recommended that Eskom undertake all the necessary research activities to fully understand the construction and operation of conventional HVDC schemes in preparation to construct and commission the first internal HVDC scheme by 2018. Introduction of 500 kV as a new voltage level It has been proposed that energising some of the Eskom 400 kV lines at 500 kV should be investigated. Increasing the voltage from 400 kV to 500 kV provides a significant increase in transfer capacity for a relatively little cost. While it is recognised that this is not a standard voltage level for Eskom and faces difficulties at the substation level in terms of moving between the voltages, it is also be recognised that it is a standard and well developed voltage level internationally. It is not suggested that an ambitious scheme to upgrade the whole 400 kV network to 500 kV, but rather that certain areas could be targeted to implement a gradual phasing in because of long term strategic advantages. One significant advantage for introducing 500 kV in the northern part of the country is that it would make the ideal voltage for establishing new interconnections with the neighbouring countries. The 500 kV voltage is more flexible and cost effective than the 765 kV as well as being very effective for long distance power transfer. The 500 kV power transfer capacity would be more in line with the gradual phasing in of the new generation in the region as opposed to make a huge step increase 765 kV network that has significant operational challenges. The 500 kV network would make it easier for the neighbouring countries to establish transmission step-down injections to develop their own internal networks. This is a major political advantage to making these interconnections a reality. International Interconnection opportunities for importing There are many opportunities for international interconnections and Eskom needs to determine where these potential imported power projects would provide the most benefit to the transmissions network. The first opportunity is in the long term is for the neighbouring countries to reduce their forecasted imports from Eskom with their own internal generation, thereby reducing the generation capacity 389
CIGRE WG C1.9 demands within the Eskom network. The current forecast includes a significant component of exported power, particularly to Mozambique, to meet the load growth target. However timing always plays the major deciding factor in these projects and it is necessary to identify the best connection points within the Eskom network for imported power projects depending on the timing of these projects. Not only must the best connection point be identified, but what generation or transmission development within Eskom can be deferred or avoided, thus providing the full cost avoided benefit of an imported power project.
Design Issues Eskom transmission plans show that more than 6000km of 400kV and 765kV transmission lines are needed in next 7 years, and more than 20000 MVA of transformer capacity will be added in the same period in order to cater for expansion and align the network to the grid code. Extensive use of guyed towers will be adopted, both cross-rope chainette type towers and guyed-V towers as shown in the diagrams below:
390
CIGRE WG C1.9
These line designs have resulted in significant capital cost savings for Eskom, as well as excellent technical performance. The tower and conductor selection process considers the entire life cycle of the line, and includes studies not on just line losses, but entire systyem losses as well. The practices have been captured in an international reference book called the Eskom Power Series. In terms of substation design Eskom is now also adopting the breaker and a half layout for some of the new substations, to allow for higher reliability and easier maintenance outages. Eskom has also commenced line and substation research and designs for the planned future HVDC connections.
CIGRE WG C1.9 2012 to NERSA was rejected and an increase of only 25% allowed over the same period. This has placed significant strain on the capital sources of Eskom and World Bank funding for part financing of the two new large cola fired power stations was sought for the first time in Eskoms history. The Government has also had to provide guarantees for some of the funding for the first time. The reduced tariff increase means that there will be large increases in the price of electricity over a longer period to fund the capital expansion program. Project development is required to meet one of the following investment criteria: before approval can be given: Least cost e.g. new customers, reliability etc. Cost reduction e.g. capacitors. Strategic e.g. environmental, statutory, etc. South Africa has created a successful model for collection of funds from energy exports which is based on strict payment terms, guarantees and the involvement of a clearing bank.
49.
Sudan
CIGRE WG C1.9 generation and 330.8 MW thermal generation. In addition to this, there are many thermal power stations in isolated areas with a total capacity of 105.7 MW. In 2001, the Electricity Act was issued, with its main objective being that the monopoly of the NEC was eliminated, specifically in the electricity generation and distribution areas of the sector. In terms of this Act, any private company or person has the right to generate and distribute electricity. The Investment Act was also passed which has more attractive facilities to encourage foreign and local investors in the sector. The NEC is responsible for generation, transmission and distribution via the national grid and in isolated areas of Sudan. It is a state-owned corporation under the Ministry of Energy and Mining and owns and operates the countrys main generation, transmission and distribution assets. The electricity system within Sudan is comprised of the main National Grid, a number of isolated off-grid systems and some existing private generation companies. Approximately 75% of the countrys total electric power is produced by the NEC. The remaining 25% is generated for self-use by various industries including food processing and sugar factories, textile mills, and the Port Sudan refinery [9]. The NEC grid system is a 220 kV national grid, transformed to 110 kV to the west, 110 kV and 66 kV to the east and 500 kV to the north of Sudan. There are also fourteen isolated grids in the main towns of the country. Figure 49.1 below shows the layout of the transmission grid. Since 2002 the NEC, fully supported by the Government of Sudan (GOS), has implemented a fast track programme which has successfully added generation of 427 MW to the grids, national and isolated.
393
CIGRE WG C1.9
The NEC manages installed electric generation capacity of just over 1 200 MW. [1] There is no regulator for the electricity sector and there is little competition in this sector. There are a few privately owned diesel-powered generators that provide electricity in regions outside the coverage of the national grid [1]. In total it is estimated that only 30% of Sudans population has access to electricity [1, 2].
394
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 49.1: Historical Growth Rate (GDP)
Sector 1 Agriculture Irrigated crops Rain fed mechanized crop Rain fed traditional crop Livestock Forest, fishing & others 2 Industry Mining quarrying Oil Manufacturing Electricity & Water Construction 3 Commerce (services) 4 Government Total 19911995 22.20% 12.60% 28.50% 51.90% 24.30% 12.50% 4.70% 21.30% 10% 1% 6.20% 9.20% 2.90% 1.80% 9.70% 19962000 7.80% 7% 7.10% 7.70% 9% 4.20% 15.50% 139.50% 255.20% 9% 3.70% 2.80% 2.40% -1.40% 6.80% 20012005 3.70% 6.70% -9.90% 0% 4.70% 3.40% 13.50% 25% 26.30% 6% 2.20% 4.70% 1% 24.90% 7.20%
Electricity consumption refers to gross production, which includes consumption by station auxiliaries and any losses in the transformers that are considered integral parts of the station. Also included is the total electric energy produced by pumping installations without deduction of electric energy absorbed by pumping [3, 4]. Table 49.2 shows electricity consumption from 1980 to 2002.
Table 49.2: Electricity Consumption [4]
Year Electricity consumption (GWh) 1980 876 1985 1 295 1990 1 327 1995 1 421 2000 2 451 2001 2 560 2002 2 897
The demand forecast for the domestic sector takes into account the following: The extent of electrification is to be increased to 85% in 2030 from the present 18% in 2005. The forecast of the number of households to be electrified every year is based on the population projection and the estimated number of households. The population census of 1993 was the basis for population & household projections. The increase in specific consumption of electricity will primarily be dictated by changes in average household income.
395
CIGRE WG C1.9 Average energy consumption per household is assumed for each type of household. The change in average household consumption could potentially be driven by changes in both household income and price of fuels. There is a small commercial sector in Sudan, and the following factors are taken into account in forecasting its demand: As with the domestic sector, the forecast of sales to the small commercial sector is a function of the number of customers and specific consumption per customer. Growth of the small commercial sector is expected to be closely linked to that of the domestic sector. The ratio of small commercial electricity customers to domestic electricity customers added to the National Grid each year has remained fairly constant with an average of 170 new commercial customers for every 1000 domestic customers connected to the national grid. Future growth in small commercial customers is assumed to maintain this relationship. The average electrical consumption of the small commercial sector is also likely to be driven by average household income levels. In the industrial and large commercial sector demand forecast, the following factors are taken into account: Future demand for electricity in this sector will again be a function of the numbers of consumers and the average consumption per consumer. The range, scale and diversity of services/products offered by this sector are such that the only opportunity for drawing comparisons of consumption patters comes from firms producing the same products. Unlike the domestic sector, where it was identified that consumption increases with household wealth and associated appliance ownership, consumption in the industrial sector is based upon the electrical equipment designed and installed to achieve a targeted capacity of production. Change in specific consumption of energy, including electricity, may be a function of production, but once the maximum capacity is reached further consumption would be linked to a change in operations or an expansion of the facilities. With regard to the agricultural sector, it is estimated that the total agricultural land area of Sudan is 200 million feddans (1 feddan = 4 200 m2). Of this, the current area under cultivation does not exceed 40 million feddans which implies a utilization level of less than 20%. The electrical demand forecast for
396
CIGRE WG C1.9 large scale irrigation schemes is therefore based upon the existing and forecast areas of land to be irrigated by the different river systems, as stated in the Ministry of Irrigations Long-Term Agricultural Strategy Plan for 2002 to 2027. Table 49.3 shows the peak demand and the growth rate forecast, whilst Table 49.4 shows the electricity consumption forecast. The results in Table 49.3 are graphically illustrated in Figure 49.2.
Table 49.3: Peak Demand Forecast (MW) & Growth Rate (%)
Case High Case Growth rate Base Case Growth rate Low Case Growth rate 2006 1530 2010 4731 33% 4550 33% 3987 31% 2015 7199 9% 6693 8% 5513 7% 2020 10191 7% 2025 14023 7% 2030 19184 6% 13883 4% 9808 4%
1475
8995 6% 6800 4%
11205 4%
1346
8086 4%
397
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 49.5 shows the installed capacity for different energy sources [7]. Additional generation capacity to be used to supplement the forecasted resources will be made available via the planned interconnection between Sudan and Ethiopia which will be based on surplus firm and non-firm energy. The proposed link is of double circuit 230 kV lines with a transfer capacity of about 200 MW. The link starts from Bahir Dar substation passing through Gonder and Shehedi substations in Ethiopia and ends at Gedaref substation in Sudan, with a total length of 296 km [7, 8].
398
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 49.5: Installed Generation Capacity MW
Energy Source 2004 MW HFO (Heavy Fuel Oil (Petroleum) Diesel Hydro Nuclear Other Total 649 245 308 0 0 1 201 2005 MW 649 250 308 0 0 1 206 2006 MW 649 255 308 0 0 1 211 2007 MW 649 260 308 0 0 1 216
The Generation Plan draws together all of the necessary inputs from the demand forecast report, the hydrology data and the thermal generation data to derive the least cost generation plan for the NEC Long-term Power System Planning Study (LTPSPS). The least cost generation plan and the associated transmission plan is derived in economic terms to ensure that the projects selected make efficient use of scarce national resources from the perspective of the economy. The starting point for generation expansion planning is the demand forecast, which has been presented and discussed in the Demand Forecast Report. The cost production simulations are based on the manipulation of load duration curves representing the demand of the system. The basic shape of the daily load curve may be entered either in the form of hourly load data or typical days over the year. The annual forecast power and energy demands are also entered allowing for changes in the system annual load factor. Cost of production simulation, as discussed above, is done by using a programme that incorporates a probabilistic production costing model. The model calculates the expected amount of energy generated by each unit on the system together with the fuel and the operating and maintenance cost associated with plant operation. Simulations may be carried out on an annual, seasonal or monthly basis. The data requirements for simulation include: Cost and operating assumptions for existing plant. Technical and economic assumptions regarding the modeling methodology such as price basis, time horizon, discount rate and security criteria (LOLP and ENS etc.). Fuel price forecasts. Cost and operating assumptions for potential new (candidate) plant. The simulation process, which takes into account merit order dispatch and planned and forced outage rates, is carried out as follows: The dispatch of the composite hydroelectric plant is initially undertaken with a view to
399
CIGRE WG C1.9 maximizing the use of total energy and available capacity. The simulation is performed for each month, with plant on planned maintenance in that month removed from consideration. Planned maintenance is scheduled systematically into months with the highest monthly reserve margins. The lowest variable cost generating unit is dispatched first under the load duration curve for the month. This determines its expected dispatch when it is available; its own forced outage rate is factored in to determine its overall level of dispatch. The second lowest cost unit is then dispatched. The dispatch of this unit is dependent on whether the first is available, and to reflect this, an equivalent load duration curve (ELDC) is derived to take account of the forced outage of the first unit. The second unit is then dispatched under the ELDC, after which account of its own forced outage is made. Subsequent units are dispatched following least cost merit order dispatch. Each time, a new ELDC is derived which takes account of the forced outages of plant. The above process results in the calculation of the amount of generation dispatched by each plant in each month. This is summed to give annual totals. The calculation is extended to determine total fuel costs O&M costs for the year. After all plant has been dispatched, there will remain a small amount of demand which, in theory, cannot be met. This is the energy not served (ENS) which is also calculated as part of the simulation process along with the loss of load probability (LOLP). The above simulation process is performed for different combinations of existing and new (candidate) plant in different years as directed under the optimization process. For each combination, the key results retained by the model are the annual values for total fuel and O&M costs, reserve margin, ENS and LOLP. Figure 49.4 shows the generation forecast and mix based on the forecast up to 2030:
400
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 49.4: Generation Forecast and Generation Mix Based on Forecast to 2030
The transmission network is planned such that an outage of any component (e.g. overhead line, transformer, etc) or any generating unit can be accommodated. It should be noted that there might be some loss of supply in the event of multiple or overlapping outages. Transmission circuits are generally reliable (provided they are adequately maintained) and an N-1 criterion is usually found to provide acceptable reliability. The use of an N-1 security criterion is considered appropriate for planning the transmission system of the Sudan. Thermal ratings of equipment should not be exceeded during the outage of an item of plant and voltages should remain within limits. Circuit ratings The existing NEC transmission system uses 220 kV, 110 kV and 66 kV overhead transmission lines, and in the future the Merowe hydro-electric power plant will be connected to the rest of the system via 500 kV transmission lines. The type, thermal rating and electrical parameters of these lines are used for transmission system planning. The thermal rating is based on the following conditions: ambient temperature 40C, maximum conductor temperature 75C, intensity of solar radiation 1200 w/m2, wind velocity 1 mph. Fault levels Fault levels should remain within the capability of the plant. Fault levels will be calculated so that the most onerous case is considered. In line with commonly adopted practice for networks and planning studies of this type, three phase fault levels will be considered in this study.
401
CIGRE WG C1.9 Transient stability Generation and generation groups should retain stability with the system for a three-phase fault which is cleared within 120 ms. Stability should be retained post-fault with the faulted circuit no longer in service. The network should not exhibit any poorly damped natural frequencies that could give rise to sustained oscillations between machines or machine groups. Power system studies Load flow, fault level and transient stability studies are conducted with the objective of identifying the required transmission system reinforcements to accommodate the forecast growth in levels of demand and generation whilst meeting the planning criteria. The main emphasis is on load flow studies which are used primarily to identify the transmission circuit and reactive power requirements. Fault level studies are used to determine the prospective short circuit currents and thereby identify the switchgear rating requirements. Transient stability studies are used to confirm that the generation on the system will remain in synchronism following major, credible disturbances. Power system planning model NEC uses power system simulation software to test the system performance against the planning criteria over the study period. The model incorporates the projected increase in demand derived from the demand forecast and generation dispatch based on the least cost generation expansion plan. A single element outage applies in turn to each circuit and transformer on the system. Power factor In the load flow studies, a load power factor of 0.85 is assumed for the 66 kV and 110 kV loads, and a 0.8 power factor for loads connected directly to 220 kV busbars. These power factors have been found through measurement to be representative of conditions on the NEC system at these voltage levels. As is the case here, it is usual to find lower overall power factors on higher voltage busbars. This is due primarily to reactive power losses in the step down transformers.
CIGRE WG C1.9 trade between these two countries. Future interconnection of the grids in Ethiopia, Sudan, and Egypt is also possible. Interconnection of the Ethiopia and Sudan power systems would thus enable improved economics and increased reliability of supply in the two countries by taking advantage of the hydro thermal complementarities of the power systems and some variability in peak demand. The two countries would be able to trade not only energy but also reserve capacity, thus facilitating a reduction in the total reserve margin on the interconnected system, as well as capital and operating costs. Other benefits derived from the construction of the transmission line would include lower energy costs if expensive diesel generated electricity is avoided [10]. This generation capacity to be used to supplement the forecasted resources will be made available via the planned interconnection between Sudan and Ethiopia which will be based on surplus firm and nonfirm energy. The proposed link is a double circuit 230-kV line with a transfer capacity of about 200 MW. The link starts from Bahir Dar substation passing through Gonder and Shehedi substations in Ethiopia and ends at Gedaref substation in Sudan with a total length of 296 km [7, 8]. The planned transmission expansions for the Sudan, based on the demand forecast and the generation plan, is shown in Figure 47.5 below. A number of 110 kV, 220 kV, and 500 kV lines and associated substations are anticipated as shown in the figure.
403
CIGRE WG C1.9
404
CIGRE WG C1.9 Measures are being taken to ensure that existing hydro facilities are protected from the extreme climate which causes silt build up, reducing their generation capacities [1]. Sudans main energy source is biomass, mostly in traditional uses. The national electricity grid reaches a half million households, less than 10% of the population. Major and minor local grids serve another 5%. At present there is no national interconnected grid covering the whole country. In 2000, the Global Environment Facility (GEF) launched a project to create a sustainable technical, institutional and financial infrastructure to support the market penetration of solar photovoltaic (PV) systems. The project was aimed to meet the growing energy demand in semi-urban Sudan with PV, rather than diesel systems. The project established a strong network of partnerships among the central and state government, the Sudan Environment Conservation Society, the Energy Committee of the National Assembly and the Energy Research Institute [11].
405
CIGRE WG C1.9
49.8 References
1. http://www.reeep.org/index.php?id=9353&text=policy-db&special=viewitem&cid=60 2. http://www.eia.doe.gov/cabs/Sudan/Electricity.html 3. http://www.iaea.org/inisnkm/nkm/aws/eedrb/data/SD-elex.html 4. http://globalis.gvu.unu.edu/indicator_detail.cfm?IndicatorID=46&Country=SD 5. http://www.zawya.com/cm/profile.cfm/cid852320 6. http://www.eoearth.org/article/Energy_profile_of_sudan 7. www.absenergyresearch.com 8. http://www.bgr.de/geotherm/ArGeoC1/pdf/06%20Energy%20master%20plan.pdf 9. Countries Worldbank 10. http://ensap.nilebasin.org/index.php?option=com_content&task=view&id=40&Itemid=76 11. www.theGEF.org 12. http://goliath.ecnext.com/coms2/gi_0199-3449054/SUDAN-Electricity.html 13. http://www.hifab.se/templates/NewsPage.aspx?id=590&epslanguage=EN
406
CIGRE WG C1.9
50.
Swaziland
CIGRE WG C1.9 monitor the performance and the efficiency of licensed operators. The Ministry of Finance, the Swaziland Environmental Authority (SEA), the Fuel Pricing Committee, and the Renewable Energy Association of Swaziland (REASWA) also play important roles in the regulatory process [1]. Figure 50.1 is a graphical representation of the electricity supply structure in Swaziland.
A 400 kV line running across Swaziland from Arnot (South Africa) via Barberton and Komatipoort to Mozal in Mozambique, became operational in 2000. The line is co-owned by a company called Mozambique Transmission Company (Montraco), a joint venture between EDM, Eskom and SEB. The Montraco 400 kV line provides a gateway to the SEB to trade in the Southern African Power Pool and to source future bulk supplies from other utilities in the SADC region, in addition to Eskom [5]. Figure 50.2 shows the 132 kV feeds from Eskom and the proposed 400 kV Montraco line that supplies Mozambique.
408
CIGRE WG C1.9
409
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 50.1: Swazilands Energy Demand Projections by Fuel Type (Million Gigajoules) [11]
Fuel and energy requirements are met from the following main sources: (1994 Energy Balance Swaziland) [3]: Fuel wood, biomass waste and other renewable sources (56%), Petroleum products (22%), Coal (16%), and Electricity (6%). It is estimated that the industrial customers represent 47% of total users, followed by domestic users 23%, irrigation 18%, commercial 11% and the rest represents 1% [3]. There are approximately 42 000 electrified households as well as 70 large energy users with approximately 10 industrial users [1]. It is estimated that 40% of urban areas and 4% of rural areas are electrified. The estimated overall electrification rate is 27% [1]. While the consumption of energy is low by international standards, the countrys use of energy is higher per capita than many regional neighbouring countries [1]. A major concern is the potential for significant tariff increases due to the dependence on imported energy from the SADC region and the imminent shortages of power in the region [1]. Government has expressed its commitment to extend the grid to rural areas through a rural electrification programme started in the year 2000 [1]. Figures 50.3, 50.4 and 50.5 below are graphical representations for electricity net generation, consumption, and installed capacity respectively from 1980 to 2006. 410
CIGRE WG C1.9
411
CIGRE WG C1.9
Edwaleni power station comprises three sets of diesel generation facilities. These however are seldom utilized because of the high costs involved. Their generation capacity is: Diesel stations: (2x4.5 MW) + 1 x 0.5 MW = 9.5 MW [4].
412
CIGRE WG C1.9 Total diesel generation is therefore 9.5 MW. Total installed capacity is thus 69.8 MW [4]. Electricity generation was self-sufficient until 1973 when a power shortfall was experienced due to the growing demand, hence the first 132 kV Eskom line was built. Two additional Eskom feeders were subsequently installed due to a further demand growth. A 400 kV power line from Maputo was also introduced. This led to the establishment of a 400/132 kV bulk supply substation at Edwaleni. The scope of the project also entailed the establishment of an interconnected 132 kV grid which links to the existing three 132 kV Eskom lines. Discussions are on-going regarding the possibility of constructing a thermal power station at Mpaka where 1000 MW is expected to be generated on completion of the project [5]. Once completed, this thermal power station will enable Swaziland to be self-sufficient, and excess power would be exported to the rest of the SADC region. Swaziland has been involved in a joint venture project with South Africa. The Swaziland Komati Project Enterprise is a power project that is located in the Komati River Basin, and it entails construction of two dams within Swaziland and South Africa for the purpose of hydroelectric power generation and establishing agricultural projects. Other major projects underway include the construction of power stations at Maguga Dam, a Systems Losses Scheme aimed at reducing power losses and a feasibility study on the Bagasse Power Station, which will reduce the countrys imports from South Africa [5]. Transmission & Distribution The planning and design criteria adopted for the reinforcement and upgrade of the 132 kV network is for firm or single contingency (N-1) capability for both transmission lines and substation equipment [4].
413
CIGRE WG C1.9
414
CIGRE WG C1.9 The Swaziland Electricity Board finances its operations and capital expenditure from company generated revenue, government funding, donor funds, and bank loans. Such donors include: the World Bank, United Nations Agencies, and individual countries [1]. For example, funding for the construction of Maguga Hydro Power Station was sourced as follows [6]: 7.0 million from the European Investment Bank, 11.2 million from the Government of Swaziland, 41.0 million from Swaziland Electricity Boards own resources, 87.0 million from the Standard Bank Swaziland, and The Rural Electrification Project was funded by the Chinese Government
50.8 References
1. Renewable Energy & Energy Efficiency Partnership (REEP). Swaziland Policy and Regulatory Review 2009. URL http://reeep-sa.org/projects/doc_download/55-swaziland2009. Last accessed: 22 July 2009. 2. Global Energy Network Institute. Map of Swaziland Electricity Grid. URL http://www.geni.org/globalenergy/library/national_energy_grid/swaziland/swazilandnationa lelectricitygrid.shtml. Last accessed: 22 July 2009. 3. Swaziland Environment Authority. The Swaziland Environment Action Plan (SEAP). URL http://www.environment.gov.sz/files/seap.pdf. Last accessed 27 July 2009. 4. [Swaziland Electricity Company. URL http://www.sec.co.sz. Last accessed 27 July 2009. 5. Southern African Chamber of Commerce. Swaziland The Official SADC Trade, Industry and Investment Review 2006.
415
CIGRE WG C1.9 URL http://www.sanec.org/images/stories/Country/Swaziland_Review_2006.pdf. Last accessed: 27 July 2009. 6. Swaziland Electricity Board. Consolidated Financial Statements for the Year Ended 31 March 2006. URL http://www.seb.co.sz/images/SEB%20Part%20B.pdf. Last accessed: 23 July 2009. 7. Swaziland Business Yearbook 2009. Employment. http://www.swazibusiness.com/sbyb2007/employment.html. Last accessed 24 July 2009. 8. European Union Energy Initiative. Newsletter No. 1. Last accessed 24 July 2009. 9. Energy Information Administration. Swaziland Energy Profile. URL: http://tonto.eia.doe.gov/country/country_energy_data.cfm?fips=WZ 10. The Southern African Community Today. 2007 the year for energy security. URL: http://www.sardc.net/Editorial/sadctoday/view.asp?pubno=v9n6&vol=514 11. T.M. Mhlangeni. Swazilands first national communication to the united nations framework convention on climate change. URL http://unfccc.int/resource/docs/natc/swanc1.pdf. Last accessed: 28 July 2009.
416
CIGRE WG C1.9
51.
Tanzania
417
CIGRE WG C1.9
418
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 51.2: Tanzania Forecast Summary
Figure 51.2: Demand Forecast in Tanzania Source SSEA II Regional Power Needs Assessment report
419
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 51.3: Energy Forecast in Tanzania Source SSEA II Regional Power Needs Assessment report
420
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 51.3: Current and Future Generation and Transmission Projects.
Generation Additions Keycrezi CT Zambia Interconnector Ruhadji Hydro Power Conversion of oil fired CT Mchuchuma caol fired plant Mchuchuma caol fired plant Rumakali Hydro Combustion Turbine MW 60 200 358 200 200 222 60 Year 2005 2006 2010 2016 2013 2020 2023 2026 Transmission Line Shinyange Mwanza Ruhadji-mufindi-kihansi Ruhadji kihansi Kidatu-Morogoro-Ubango Mchuchuma-Mufindi Rumakali-Mbeya Rumakali Mufindi Mchuchuma-Mufindi kV 220 220 220 220 220 220 220 220 km 139 200 200 310 283 85 134 283 Year 2010 2012 2012 2012 2018 2022 2022 2026
Tanzania has been carrying out the Power Master Plan (PMP) programme which has been updated annually since 1980. The objective of the PMP is to determine the least-cost programme for the development of Tanzanias generation and transmission expansion plans, and to enable TANESCO to understand the existing and future demand requirements for supply to the customer. To improve power development in the country, TANESCO co-operates with the following organizations and countries: Southern African Power Pool (SAPP). The SAPP projects include: o Zambia-Tanzania-Kenya interconnection, o Malawi-Mozambique interconnection, and o DRC-Zambia interconnection. Most SAPP utilities recorded a positive demand growth of about 3%, attributed to positive economic growth in most member countries: Nile Basin Regional Power Trade Project. The NBI project objectives are: o The establishment of an institutional means to co-ordinate the development of regional power markets among the Nile Basin countries, o To build analytical capacity and provide technical infrastructure, and o To manage the development of the Nile Basin resources through equitable utilization of, and benefit from, the common Nile Basin water resources. Nile Equatorial Lakes Subsidiary Action Program (NELSAP). The NELSAP aims are: o Developing infrastructure consisting of small scale hydropower developments in critical areas, and o Strengthening transmission interconnections between several countries in the NELSAP region (Burundi, DRC, Kenya, Rwanda, Tanzania and Uganda).
CIGRE C1.9 AFRICA STUDY REPORT
421
CIGRE WG C1.9 East African Regional Power Plan. The plan objectives are: o East Africa, as a region, possesses adequate energy resources for the development of the region. Under the auspices of the East African Community, the East African Power Master Plan Study is being carried out to define the least cost expansion programme for the development of combined power generation systems for Kenya, Uganda and Tanzania.
422
CIGRE WG C1.9 importance. The solar electrification project is on village level and is dependent on donor support for funding. No donor funds have been committed yet.
51.8 References
1. www.areed.org/country/tanzania/energy.pdf 2. www.tanzaniainvest.com/tanzania-energy-and-mining/news/285-tanzania-electricitysupply-company-seeks-project-funding-
423
CIGRE WG C1.9
52.
Tunisia
424
CIGRE WG C1.9 Tunisia has formed part of the trans-Maghreb electricity integration plan. The plan consists of the trans-Maghreb project, and its purpose is to link the power grids of all the Maghreb countries to those of Spain and the rest of the European Union. Tunisia, however, faces the challenge of having its domestic power grid upgraded first so that domestic demand can be met and greater reliability can be set in place. Tunisia already is linked to Algerias electrical grid, and efforts for the country to link its grid to Libyas grid have commenced. The connection of Libya and Tunisias networks are will allow for an integrated North African power grid that will extend from Morocco to Egypt.[2] Tunisia has plans for two nuclear power stations, to be operational by 2019. Both facilities are projected to produce 9001000 MW. France is set to become an important partner in Tunisias nuclear power plans, having signed an agreement, along with other partners, to deliver training and technology. [1]
425
CIGRE WG C1.9 Such approaches can be found only in some studies performed by foreign consulting companies. The North African power utilities do not have any specific construction criteria for interconnection lines, but commissioning of an interconnection requires a higher hierarchical level of analysis where possible incoherency in planning criteria and system constraints are solved, as well as all aspects related to the engineering issues and co-ordination (e.g.: protection philosophy and relay settings). Considering the complexity of interconnection studies, the pre-feasibility and feasibility studies for the different kinds of interconnections (HVAC, HVDC) are frequently performed by foreign consulting companies. The specific economic criteria for interconnection lines are based on difference in electricity prices or on the overall change in system operational costs derived by different interconnection options and different operating regimes of power systems. The basic assumptions related to the N criterion of the transmission network are: The rating limits of transmission lines should be regarded as maximum permanent currents. In normal operating conditions, no overload of the transmission network is allowed. No generator will be above its continuous reactive capability with possible restrictions decided by the planner to account for operational constraints. The loads are represented as constant active and reactive powers. In normal operating conditions a long-term overload of transformers up to 10% of nominal rating is allowed. A short term overload (less than 15 minutes) is allowed up to 20%. For the transmission system generally, unless otherwise specified, the maximum operating voltages are as follows: For 400 kV network maximum voltage is 428 kV. For 220 kV network maximum voltage is 235.4 kV. For 150 kV network maximum voltage is 160.5 kV. For 132 kV network maximum voltage is 141.2 kV. For 90 kV network maximum voltage is 96.3 kV. For 66 kV network maximum voltage is 70.6 kV. The minimum operating voltages values are as follows: For 400 kV network minimum voltage is 372 kV. For 220 kV network minimum voltage is 204.6 kV. For 150 kV network minimum voltage is 139.5 kV. For 132 kV network minimum voltage is 122.8 kV. For 90 kV network minimum voltage is 83.7 kV.
CIGRE C1.9 AFRICA STUDY REPORT
426
CIGRE WG C1.9 For 66 kV network minimum voltage is 61.4 kV. Operating Frequency: The nominal frequency is 50 Hz and its permissible variation range under AGC is 50 0.05 Hz. Under normal operating conditions the maximum permissible variation range is50 0.2 Hz. N-1 Security Conditions. The following criteria are applied under N-1 contingency conditions: The transmission system should be planned such that reasonable and foreseeable contingencies do not result in the loss or unintentional separation of a major portion of the network or in the separation from the regional interconnected system. During contingency conditions, a temporary overload of the transmission lines is allowed up to 20%. A temporary overload of transformers is allowed in emergency conditions up to 20% during peak hours. The maximum post-transient voltage deviation is 10%. For transmission system generally, unless otherwise specified, the maximum operating voltage values are as follows: For 400 kV network maximum voltage is 440 kV. For 220 kV network maximum voltage is 242 kV. For 132 kV network maximum voltage is 145.2 kV. For 66 kV network maximum voltage is 72.6 kV. The minimum operating voltage values are as follows: For 400 kV network minimum voltage is 360 kV. For 220 kV network minimum voltage is 198 kV. For 132 kV network minimum voltage is 118.8 kV. For 66 kV network minimum voltage is 59.4 kV.
427
CIGRE WG C1.9 Operating range frequency: During N-1 contingency conditions, the maximum and minimum permissible frequencies are 50.4 Hz and 49.6 Hz respectively. In the case of a severe incident, the maximum and minimum permissible frequency limits are 52 Hz and 47.5 Hz respectively. Transmission Network Planning Probabilistic Approach. The probabilistic approach is seldom used in planning studies directly by the concerned transmission system operators (TSOs) or vertically integrated undertakings (VIUs). However, the probabilistic approach is being widely used in interconnection studies among the North African Countries (e.g., the MEDRING and the ELTAM studies). Unless specific data is provided, the basic assumptions adopted concerning the unavailability of the transmission system, are given in the following table:
Table 52.2: Transmission Line Forced Unavailability Rate
Voltage Level [kV] 500400 220 15090 Unavailability Rate [p.u./100 km] 0.005 0.0025 0.005
As no reliability data on the transformers is available, standard hypotheses for these values are assumed. It is assumed that the transformers have an availability of 99.5%. Also, records on the reliability of reactors and capacitors are generally not available, hence standard hypotheses for these values are adopted. More specifically, it is assumed that the reactive compensation equipment has an availability of 99.5%. Three different weather conditions, Normal, Bad and Stormy, are considered and, unless otherwise specified, the parameters used to simulate the weather effects are set out in Table 52.3:
Table 52.3: Parameters of Weather Model
Weather Conditions Hours Ratio [p.u.] Normal Bad Stormy 0.9667 0.03 0.003 Coefficients [p.u.] 1.0 10.0 15.0
428
CIGRE WG C1.9 As an indicator of the system adequacy, the annual value of Expected Energy Not Supplied (EENS) due to unavailability in the transmission system and/or generation considering the constraints represented by the transport capacities of the lines and active power limits of the power plants is used. A threshold value 10-4 p.u. is assumed for the EENS index related to insufficiency of the transmission system due to a reduction in the transmission capacity of the network. Economic evaluation in transmission-generation planning. The price of EENS for an economic evaluation can vary from 0.5USD/kWh up to 2USD/kWh. The generation margins and the loss of load probability adopted for the reliability study are the following: Minimum generation margin reserve: 15%. Loss of load probability (LOLP): 524 hrs/year. The highest value is valid whenever the systems are operated in islanded mode. Power reserve requirements and criteria Power systems in North Africa are operated with a primary frequency control and a LFC (Load Frequency Control). Primary and Secondary reserves are determined by the operator. The frequency and active power control is provided by the following means: Automatic response from generating units operating in a free governor frequency sensitive mode (Primary Reserve). Automatic Generation Control (AGC) of generating units equipped with automatic load frequency control (Secondary Reserve).
429
CIGRE WG C1.9 include: Barbara (3 MW), Sidi Saad (1750 kW), Siliana (850 kW), Bejaoua (750 kW), Medjez el Bab (250 kW), Nebhana (500 kW), Sejnane (1 MW), Bouhertma (1.2 MW) and Khanguet Zezia (650 kW).[2]
430
CIGRE WG C1.9 The total annual number of graduates from Tunisian universities is more than 40 000 and about 9 000 of Tunisian students are currently enrolled in prestigious universities and higher education institutions abroad, particularly in the United States, Canada, France and Germany.[3]
52.8 References
1. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Tunisia 2. http://www.mbendi.com/indy/powr/af/tu/p0005.htm 3. http://www.tunisie-competences.nat.tn/default.aspx?id=135&Lg=2
431
CIGRE WG C1.9
53.
Uganda
432
CIGRE WG C1.9
Government of Uganda
UEGC
UETC
TX
UEDC
Lease & Assignment Agreement
Support Agreement
Generation Concessionaire
O&M
Other IPPs
Kenya Tanzania
System Operator
Distribution Concessionaire
Export / Import
Customers
Umeme Limited is responsible for the management of the distribution concession. The Rural Electrification Board has been formed to manage the Rural Electrification Fund and promote private sector participation in rural electrification and renewable energy programmes in the country. The Electricity Regulatory Authority (ERA) regulates the sector and sets the tariffs. The Authority is an independent body responsible for electricity regulation, which was previously carried out by the Ministry and the Uganda Electricity Board. The key functions of the ERA are: Issuing licenses for electricity generation, transmission, distribution, supply, imports and exports. Reviewing and approving tariffs. Establishing and enforcing sector standards. Advising the Minister on matters regarding the needs of the electricity sector.
433
CIGRE WG C1.9 A part of the planned expansion of access to energy services is the Ugandan Governments policy to promote competitive private sector participation in the development of conventional and renewable energy sources. A number of IPPs have currently obtained permits from the Electricity Regulatory Authority to carry out feasibility studies on sites with potential to generate mini hydro power. The government has started a programme, named Energy for Rural Transformation, to ensure that rural areas are provided with energy. The programme is supported by the World Bank to increase access to modern, clean and affordable energy in rural areas from 2% to 10% by 2012. The Energy for Rural Transformation programme seeks to achieve this growth through the use of renewable energy and traditional fuel. Positive news update: Uganda has low access of 3% of population and the new Bujagali Falls project recently constructed will add 255MW of power and improve electricity access.
434
CIGRE WG C1.9
435
CIGRE WG C1.9 manufacturing forecast. The high and low forecasts are based on different growth rates in the number of domestic clients, as well as on different scenarios regarding economic growth. The results are shown in Tables 53.1, 53.2 and Figures 53.2, 53.3 below.
Table 53.1: Basis Assumptions for the Uganda Load Forecast
Source SSEA II Regional Power Needs Assessment Table 53.2: Uganda Forecast Summary
436
CIGRE WG C1.9
Figure 53.4: Demand Forecast in Uganda Source SSEA II Regional Power Needs Assessment
Figure 53.5: Energy Forecast in Uganda Source SSEA II Regional Power Needs Assessment
437
CIGRE WG C1.9
438
CIGRE WG C1.9 The current and planned generation mix for short term measures are: An addition of 100 MW of thermal generation in 2007, Under the Energy for Rural Transformation programme, about 70 MW of electricity will be generated from renewable energy sources (such sources include mini hydros, bagasse, crop residues, etc.), Bujagali Power Project will be developed to provide 250 MW by 2010, and Karuma Power Station will be developed by 2012 to add about 200 MW. Most of new generation capacity will be provided competitively by the private sector. In terms of network infrastructure development, there is: A total of 1 115 km of 132 kV transmission lines and 54 km of 66 kV transmission lines in the country. The distribution facilities include 3 258 km of 33 kV lines, 3 443 km of 11 kV lines and 6 496 km of low voltage lines. This network provides power to only 33 of the 56 districts in the country. The Uganda Electricity Transmission Company Limited has export contract obligations to neighbouring countries as follows: Kenya (30 MW), Tanzania (9 MW), and Rwanda (5 MW). The 30 MW to Kenya is supplied only during off-peak hours, and only 9 MW and 5 MW exports go to Tanzania and Rwanda respectively. However, arrangements have been finalized for Uganda to export a firm capacity of 50 MW to Kenya from 2006, after the commissioning of the Bujagali Project.
440
CIGRE WG C1.9
441
CIGRE WG C1.9
GWh
GWh
442
CIGRE WG C1.9
54.8 References
1. www.mbendi.com
443
CIGRE WG C1.9
55.
Zambia
444
CIGRE WG C1.9 The Ministry of Energy and Water Development (MEWD) oversees all activities of the electricity sector.
445
CIGRE WG C1.9 Figures 55.2 and 55.3 show the projected electricity demand forecast and energy forecast in Zambia respectively.
Load forecast methodologies employed by Zambia include; historical trends. electrification target. bottom-up approach.
446
CIGRE WG C1.9
2% 4% 1%
93%
Zasco
LHPC
CEC
KCM
447
CIGRE WG C1.9
Table 55.1: Summary of Generation Projects
Project Capacity MW Estimated Commencement Year Kariba North Bank Extension 360 2010
2010
600750
2013
Transmission expansion or new transmission systems are dependent on the development of new generation sites. Current and future generation and transmission in Zambia is shown in Figure 55.5.
448
CIGRE WG C1.9 Zambia plays a strategic role in the Southern African Power network. Presently, Zambia is a net exporter of electricity and conducts its trade with the Democratic Republic of Congo, Namibia and South Africa. Preparatory work for the interconnection between Zambia, Tanzania and Kenya is almost complete.
449
CIGRE WG C1.9 For the Kariba North Extension, the bulk of the money is to come from the China Exim Bank (85%). The balance will be secured from other sources. This project has commenced and is expected to be complete by 2010.
450
CIGRE WG C1.9
55.8 References
1. 061129%20RECIPES%20country%20info%20Zambia 2. Zambia-Chapter%204-C
451
CIGRE WG C1.9
56.
Zimbabwe
ZESA Enterprises
PowerTel
452
CIGRE WG C1.9
Local Generators
Large Customers (+ 25 MVA) Retail, Commercial, Industrial, Agricultural and Domestic Customers
Key
The electricity sector is the sole supply domain of the Zimbabwe Electricity Supply Authority, ZESA. ZESA generates, imports and distributes all electrical energy in the country, except for a few small private generators run either as stand-alone systems in remote communities or as back-up systems by large urban companies, and in some schools and hospitals. Electricity power generation in Zimbabwe is mainly from coal and hydro plants. The power source facilities do not meet the countrys electricity demand. As a result, Zimbabwe imports 30% of its electricity from neighbouring countries, including the DRC, Mozambique, Zambia and South Africa. Reforms in the electricity industry are being implemented.
453
CIGRE WG C1.9
7% 3% 13%
59% 18%
Residential
Industry
agriculture
Commerce
Mining
Load forecast methodologies employed by Zimbabwe include; historical trend. electrification targets, and bottom-up approach.
454
CIGRE WG C1.9
455
CIGRE WG C1.9
456
CIGRE WG C1.9
CIGRE WG C1.9 (Karekezi, et al, 2002). These facilities do not meet the countrys electricity demand. As a result, Zimbabwe imports 41 per cent of its electricity from neighbouring countries, including DRC, Mozambique, Zambia and South Africa (as shown in Table 4). Electricity generation in Zimbabwe is mainly from coal and hydro plants, the former with a capacity of 1 170 MW. The largest hydro plant is Kariba, which generates 500 MW (ZESA 2001). [1]
Table 56.3: Zimbabwe Power imports[1]
458
CIGRE WG C1.9
Zimbabwes power sector has undergone a number of changes since independence. Generally speaking, four main drivers have been behind power sector reforms in Zimbabwe (Turkson, 2002) with one of the drivers explicitly focussed on the needs of the poor: Restructuring as a component of the general economic reforms; Reforming parastatals to empower historically marginalized groups; Enhancing power sector efficiency; and Mobilizing finance for capital investments in the power sector. In 1985, the Government reformed the structure of power utilities under the Electricity Act. Five publicly owned power utilities were amalgamated to form the current Zimbabwe Electricity Supply Authority (ZESA) with the aim of streamlining the administration of the electricity sector, improving efficiency, standardizing tariffs and reducing duplication of functions. ZESA became the only legal entity with the right to generate and transmit electricity. It had the option of licensing independent power producers to generate electricity and also the right to set the purchase price of electricity from the producers. The Act did not provide room for third party access, nor for other uses of the grid by third parties (ESMAP, 2000).
56.8 References
1. http://www.afrepren.org/project/gnesd/esdsi/erc.pdf 2. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Zimbabwe_Electricity_Supply_Authority
459
CIGRE WG C1.9
57.
The workgroup would like to thank all those who contributed to this report, including the many country paper submissions that were received. This document can serve as a valuable benchmarking resource, and for obtaining information. It should be updated and enhanced in the years to come, to serve as repository for use by planning engineers and others across Africa. The following workgroups are recommended for continuation of the work done by C1.9: Future major interconnections in Africa Study of the use of renewable energy in Africa to meet load growth, and tapping into the vast hydro, solar, geothermal and wind resources. Study the financing challenges facing African countries, similar to the work done by the world bank in releasing the book in 2011 entitled Africas Power Infrastructure - Investment, Integration, Efficiency It is also recommended that CIGRE C1 be represented in the SCIENTIFIC COMMITTEE of UPDEA which deals with power system development. A joint CIGRE & UPDEA symposium can be convened, were work done by C1 and C1.9 can be shared with African Countries, and vice versa. The last such CIGRE & UPDEA joint Symposium was in 1985 in Dakar, more than 25 years ago, hence this is long overdue.
460
CIGRE WG C1.9
Appendix 1
Email Contact List
[email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] Algeria Algeria Algeria Angola Angola Angola Angola Angola Angola Angola Angola Benin Benin Benin Benin Botswana Botswana Botswana Botswana Botswana Botswana Botswana Burkina Faso Burkina Faso Burkina Faso Burkina Faso Burkina Faso Cameroon Congo Congo Cte Ivoire Cte Ivoire Democratic Republic of Congo DRC Egypt Eritrea Ethiopia
461
CIGRE WG C1.9
[email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] Gambia Ghana Ghana Ghana Kenya Kenya Kenya Kenya Kenya Kenya Kenya Kenya Kenya Lesotho Lesotho Liberia Libya Malawi Malawi Malawi Malawi Malawi Mali Mauritius Mauritius Mauritius Morocco Morocco Morocco Morocco Mozambique Namibia Namibia Namibia Namibia Niger Niger Niger Nigeria Nigeria
462
CIGRE WG C1.9
[email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] Rwanda SAPP Senegal Senegal Senegal Senegal Senegal Senegal South Africa South Africa South Africa South Africa Sudan Sudan Tanzania Tanzania Tanzania Tanzania Tunisia Uganda Zambia Zambia Zambia Zambia Zambia Zambia Zambia Zambia Zambia Zimbabwe Zimbabwe Zimbabwe
463
CIGRE WG C1.9
[email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected] [email protected]
464